Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n body_n eat_v lord_n 4,945 5 4.6368 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30905 Truth triumphant through the spiritual warfare, Christian labours, and writings of that able and faithful servant of Jesus Christ, Robert Barclay, who deceased at his own house at Urie in the kingdom of Scotland, the 3 day of the 8 month 1690. Barclay, Robert, 1648-1690. 1692 (1692) Wing B740; ESTC R25857 1,185,716 995

There are 32 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o ceremony_n for_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o show_v they_o how_o the_o jew_n of_o old_a be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o spiritual_a food_n and_o water_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o how_o several_a of_o they_o through_o disobedience_n and_o idolatry_n fall_v from_o that_o good_a condition_n he_o exhort_v they_o by_o the_o example_n of_o those_o jew_n who_o god_n destroy_v of_o old_a to_o flee_v those_o evil_n show_v they_o that_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o corinthian_n be_v likewise_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o communion_n they_o will_v rob_v themselves_o if_o they_o do_v evil_a because_o they_o can_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n ver_fw-la 21._o which_o show_v that_o he_o understand_v not_o here_o the_o use_n of_o outward_a bread_n and_o wine_n because_o those_o that_o do_v drink_v the_o cup_n of_o devil_n and_o eat_v of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n yea_o wine_n the_o wicked_a may_v take_v the_o outward_a bread_n and_o wine_n the_o wicked_a of_o man_n may_v partake_v of_o the_o outward_a bread_n and_o outward_a wine_n for_o there_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o bread_n one_o ver_fw-la 17._o and_o he_o say_v we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n now_o if_o the_o bread_n be_v one_o it_o can_v be_v the_o outward_a or_o the_o inward_a will_v be_v exclude_v whereas_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o partake_n of_o the_o inward_a bread_n and_o not_o the_o outward_a that_o make_v the_o saint_n true_o one_o body_n and_o one_o bread_n and_o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o the_o one_o bread_n here_o comprehend_v both_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a by_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacramental_a union_n figment_n the_o sacramental_a union_n pretend_v be_v a_o figment_n that_o indeed_o be_v to_o affirm_v but_o not_o to_o prove_v as_o for_o that_o figment_n of_o a_o sacramental_a union_n i_o find_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n can_v give_v a_o rise_n for_o such_o a_o thing_n in_o this_o chapter_n where_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v above_o observe_v be_v not_o at_o all_o treat_v of_o that_o ceremony_n but_o only_o from_o the_o excellency_n of_o that_o privilege_n which_o the_o corinthian_n have_v as_o believe_v christian_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n dehort_v they_o from_o idolatry_n &_o partake_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v to_o idol_n so_o as_o thereby_o to_o offend_v or_o hurt_v their_o weak_a brethren_n object_n object_n but_o that_o which_o they_o most_o of_o all_o cry_n out_o for_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o be_v always_o noise_v be_v from_o 1_o cor._n 11._o where_o the_o apostle_n be_v particular_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o therefore_o from_o some_o word_n here_o they_o have_v the_o great_a appearance_n of_o truth_n for_o their_o assertion_n as_o ver_fw-la 27._o where_o he_o call_v the_o cup_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v that_o they_o who_o eat_v of_o it_o and_o drink_v it_o unworthy_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o ver_fw-la 26._o eat_v and_o drink_v their_o own_o damnation_n intimate_v hence_o that_o this_o have_v a_o immediate_a or_o necessary_a relation_n to_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n answ._n tho'_o this_o at_o first_o view_n may_v catch_v the_o unwary_a reader_n yet_o be_v well_o consider_v it_o do_v no_o way_n evince_v the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n as_o for_o the_o corinthian_n be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o ceremony_n why_o they_o be_v so_o and_o how_o that_o oblige_v not_o christian_n now_o to_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o it_o suffice_v at_o this_o time_n to_o consider_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o second_o that_o in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o and_o commit_v divers_a abuse_n three_o that_o the_o apostle_n here_o be_v give_v they_o direction_n how_o they_o may_v do_v it_o aright_o in_o show_v they_o the_o right_n and_o proper_a use_n and_o end_v of_o it_o these_o thing_n be_v premise_v let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o very_a express_a and_o particular_a use_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v different_a thing_n he_o say_v not_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o partake_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o you_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n so_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o ceremony_n by_o those_o that_o practise_v it_o have_v a_o immediate_a relation_n to_o the_o outward_a body_n &_o death_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o be_v proper_o a_o memorial_n of_o it_o but_o it_o do_v not_o thence_o follow_v that_o it_o have_v any_o inward_a or_o immediate_a relation_n to_o believer_n communicate_v or_o partake_v of_o the_o spiritual_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o spiritual_a supper_n speak_v of_o rev._n 3.20_o for_o though_o in_o a_o general_a way_n as_o every_o religious_a action_n in_o some_o respect_n have_v a_o common_a relation_n to_o the_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o god_n so_o we_o shall_v not_o deny_v but_o this_o have_v a_o relation_n to_o other_o now_o for_o his_o call_v the_o cup_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v they_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o eat_v their_o own_o damnation_n in_o not_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o this_o infer_v no_o more_o necessary_a relation_n than_o any_o other_o religious_a act_n and_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o since_o the_o corinthian_n be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o ceremony_n other_o christ_n act_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o oblige_a other_o and_o so_o perform_v it_o as_o a_o religious_a act_n they_o ought_v to_o do_v it_o worthy_o else_o they_o shall_v bring_v condemnation_n upon_o themselves_o now_o this_o will_v not_o more_o infer_v the_o thing_n so_o practise_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o necessary_a religious_a act_n obligatory_a upon_o other_o than_o when_o rom._n 14.6_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o that_o regard_v the_o day_n regard_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n it_o can_v be_v thence_o infer_v that_o the_o day_n that_o some_o esteem_v and_o observe_v do_v lay_v a_o obligation_n upon_o other_o to_o do_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o as_o he_o that_o esteem_v a_o day_n and_o place_v conscience_n in_o keep_v it_o be_v to_o regard_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o it_o be_v to_o he_o in_o so_o far_o as_o he_o dedicate_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n the_o lord_n day_n he_o be_v to_o do_v it_o worthy_o and_o if_o he_o do_v it_o unworthy_o he_o will_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o so_o keep_v it_o to_o his_o own_o damnation_n so_o also_o such_o as_o observe_v this_o ceremony_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o be_v to_o they_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o they_o use_v it_o as_o a_o religious_a act_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o their_o end_n therein_o be_v to_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n and_o to_o remember_v his_o body_n that_o be_v crucify_a for_o they_o and_o his_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o they_o if_o notwithstanding_o they_o believe_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o do_v it_o and_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o conscience_n to_o forbear_v if_o hey_n do_v it_o without_o that_o due_a preparation_n and_o examination_n which_o every_o religious_a act_n ought_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o then_o instead_o of_o true_o remember_v the_o lord_n death_n and_o his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n they_o render_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o it_o as_o be_v in_o one_o spirit_n with_o those_o that_o crucify_a he_o and_o shed_v his_o blood_n prophet_n the_o pharisee_n gild_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n though_o pretend_v with_o thanksgiving_n and_o joy_n to_o remember_v it_o thus_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n of_o old_a though_o in_o memory_n of_o the_o prophet_n they_o garnish_v their_o sepulcher_n yet_o be_v say_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o their_o blood_n and_o that_o no_o more_o can_v be_v hence_o infer_v appear_v from_o another_o say_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n rom._n 14.23_o he_o that_o doubt_v be_v damn_v if_o he_o eat_v etc._n etc._n where_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o that_o
judge_v it_o unlawful_a to_o eat_v flesh_n &c_n &c_n say_v if_o they_o eat_v doubt_v they_o eat_v their_o own_o damnation_n now_o it_o be_v manifest_a for_o all_o this_o that_o either_o the_o do_v or_o forbear_v of_o this_o be_v to_o another_o that_o place_v no_o conscience_n in_o it_o of_o no_o moment_n so_o i_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v that_o which_o in_o his_o conscience_n he_o be_v persuade_v be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o eat_v do_v eat_v his_o own_o damnation_n so_o he_o also_o that_o place_v conscience_n in_o eat_v bread_n and_o wine_n as_o a_o religious_a act_n if_o he_o do_v it_o unprepared_a and_o without_o that_o due_a respect_n wherein_o such_o act_n shall_v be_v go_v about_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o own_o damnation_n not_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n i._n e._n not_o mind_v what_o he_o do_v to_o wit_n with_o a_o special_a respect_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o by_o way_n of_o a_o special_a commemoration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ._n §_o vi_o i_o have_v now_o sufficient_o show_v what_o the_o true_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v how_o it_o be_v partake_v of_o and_o how_o it_o have_v no_o necessary_a relation_n to_o that_o ceremony_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n use_v by_o christ_n with_o his_o disciple_n it_o be_v fit_a now_o to_o consider_v the_o nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o that_o ceremony_n for_o as_o to_o the_o proper_a use_n of_o it_o we_o have_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o before_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o stand_a ordinance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n obligatory_a upon_o all_o obligatory_a ii_o whether_o this_o ceremony_n be_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o obligatory_a or_o indeed_o whether_o it_o be_v any_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o new_a covenant-dispensation_n or_o have_v any_o better_a or_o more_o bind_a foundation_n than_o several_a other_o ceremony_n appoint_v and_o practise_v about_o the_o same_o time_n which_o the_o most_o of_o our_o opposer_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v cease_v and_o now_o no_o way_n bind_v upon_o christian_n we_o find_v this_o ceremony_n only_o mention_v in_o scripture_n in_o four_o place_n to_o wit_n matthew_n mark_n and_o luke_n and_o by_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o any_o will_v infer_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o frequency_n of_o the_o mention_v of_o it_o that_o will_v add_v nothing_o for_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v therefore_o mention_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o there_o be_v other_o thing_n let_v memorable_a as_o often_o yea_o often_o mention_v matthew_z and_o mark_n give_v only_o a_o account_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n 11.23_o mat._n 26.26_o mark_v 14.22_o luke_n 22.19_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o without_o any_o precept_n to_o do_v so_o afterward_o simple_o declare_v that_o jesus_n at_o that_o time_n do_v desire_v they_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n to_o which_o luke_n add_v these_o word_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o if_o we_o consider_v this_o action_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o apostle_n there_o will_v appear_v nothing_o singular_a in_o it_o for_o a_o foundation_n to_o such_o a_o strange_a superstructure_n as_o many_o in_o their_o airy_a imagination_n have_v seek_v to_o build_v upon_o it_o for_o both_o matthew_n and_o mark_n press_v it_o as_o a_o act_n do_v by_o he_o as_o he_o be_v eat_v matthew_n say_v and_o as_o they_o be_v eat_v riccius_fw-la the_o break_n of_o bread_n be_v no_o singular_a thing_n but_o a_o custom_n to_o jew_n p._n riccius_fw-la and_o mark_v and_o as_o they_o do_v eat_v jesus_n take_v bread_n etc._n etc._n now_o this_o act_n be_v no_o singular_a thing_n neither_o any_o solemn_a institution_n of_o a_o gospel-ordinance_n because_o it_o be_v a_o constant_a custom_n among_o the_o jew_n as_o paulus_n riccius_fw-la observe_v at_o length_n in_o his_o celestial_a agriculture_n that_o when_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o pass-ove_a the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n do_v take_v bread_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o give_v of_o it_o to_o the_o rest_n and_o likewise_o take_v wine_n do_v the_o same_o so_o that_o there_o can_v nothing_o further_o appear_v in_o this_o than_o that_o jesus_n christ_n who_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o also_o observe_v the_o jewish_a feast_n and_o custom_n use_v this_o also_o among_o his_o disciple_n only_o that_o as_o in_o most_o other_o thing_n he_o labour_v to_o draw_v their_o mind_n to_o a_o further_a thing_n so_o in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n which_o be_v short_o to_o be_v which_o he_o do_v the_o often_o inculcate_v unto_o they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v averse_a from_o believe_v it_o and_o as_o for_o that_o expression_n of_o luke_n christ_n what_o it_o be_v to_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o it_o will_v amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o be_v the_o last_o time_n that_o christ_n do_v eat_v with_o his_o disciple_n he_o desire_v they_o that_o in_o their_o eat_v and_o drink_v they_o may_v have_v regard_n to_o he_o and_o by_o the_o remember_v of_o that_o opportunity_n be_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o to_o follow_v he_o diligent_o through_o suffering_n and_o death_n etc._n etc._n but_o what_o man_n of_o reason_n lay_v aside_o the_o prejudice_n of_o education_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o tradition_n will_v say_v that_o this_o account_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n give_v by_o matthew_n and_o mark_n or_o this_o expression_n of_o luke_n to_o do_v that_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o will_v amount_v to_o these_o consequence_n which_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n have_v seek_v to_o draw_v from_o it_o as_o calling_z it_z augustissimum_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la venerabile_fw-la altaris_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la the_o principal_a seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n by_o which_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v seal_v to_o believer_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o to_o give_v a_o further_a evidence_n how_o these_o consequence_n have_v not_o any_o bottom_n from_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o ceremony_n nor_o from_o the_o word_n follow_v do_v this_o etc._n etc._n let_v we_o consider_v another_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n as_o it_o be_v at_o length_n express_v by_o john_n c._n 13._o v._n 3_o 4_o 8_o 13_o 14_o 15._o jesus_n rise_v from_o supper_n and_o lay_v aside_o his_o garment_n and_o take_v a_o towel_n and_o gird_v himself_o after_o that_o he_o pour_v water_n into_o a_o basin_n and_o begin_v to_o wash_v the_o disciple_n foot_n and_o to_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o towel_n wherewith_o he_o be_v gird_v peter_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o shall_v never_o wash_v my_o foot_n jesus_n answer_v he_o if_o i_o wash_v thou_o not_o thou_o have_v no_o part_n with_o i_o relate_v christ_n wash_v of_o foot_n and_o its_o manner_n relate_v so_o after_o he_o have_v wash_v their_o foot_n he_o say_v know_v you_o what_o i_o have_v do_v to_o you_o if_o i_o then_o your_o lord_n and_o master_n have_v wash_v your_o foot_n you_o also_o aught_o to_o wash_v one_o another_o foot_n for_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o example_n that_o you_o shall_v do_v as_o i_o have_v do_v to_o you_o as_o to_o which_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o john_n relate_v this_o passage_n to_o have_v be_v do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o other_o of_o break_v bread_n both_o be_v do_v the_o night_n of_o the_o pass-ove_a after_o supper_n if_o we_o regard_v the_o narration_n of_o this_o and_o the_o circumstance_n attend_v it_o it_o be_v do_v with_o far_o more_o solemnity_n and_o prescribe_v far_o more_o punctual_o and_o particular_o than_o the_o former_a it_o be_v say_v only_o as_o he_o be_v eat_v he_o take_v bread_n bread_n compare_v with_o the_o break_v of_o bread_n so_o that_o this_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o occasional_a business_n but_o here_o he_o rise_v up_o he_o lay_v by_o his_o garment_n he_o gird_v himself_o he_o pour_v out_o the_o water_n he_o wash_v their_o foot_n he_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o towel_n he_o do_v this_o to_o all_o of_o they_o which_o be_v circumstance_n sure_o far_o more_o observable_a than_o those_o note_v in_o the_o other_o the_o former_a be_v a_o practice_n common_a among_o the_o jew_n use_v by_o all_o master_n of_o family_n upon_o that_o occasion_n but_o this_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n and_o person_n act_v it_o to_o wit_n for_o the_o master_n to_o rise_v up_o and_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o disciple_n be_v more_o singular_a and_o observable_a in_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n and_o give_v of_o wine_n it_o be_v not_o plead_v by_o our_o adversary_n nor_o yet_o mention_v in_o the_o text_n that_o he_o particular_o put_v
not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n q._n how_o come_v the_o apostle_n then_o to_o cry_v out_o and_o complain_v of_o sin_n say_v who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n do_v he_o speak_v that_o as_o a_o condition_n always_o permanent_a to_o he_o and_o other_o saint_n or_o only_o that_o which_o he_o have_v pass_v through_o what_o say_v he_o afterward_o a._n there_o be_v therefore_o now_o no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 39_o rom._n 8.1_o 2_o 3_o 5_o 36_o 37_o 38_o 39_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v make_v i_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n shall_v tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o persecution_n or_o sword_n as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o thy_o sake_n we_o be_v kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o we_o be_v account_v as_o sheep_n for_o the_o slaughter_n nay_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n through_o he_o that_o love_v we_o for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n q._n what_o say_v that_o apostle_n then_o unto_o such_o who_o take_v occasion_n from_o his_o word_n shall_v plead_v for_o continuance_n in_o sin_n for_o term_n of_o life_n and_o think_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o imputative_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v under_o grace_n a._n what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o shall_v we_o continue_v in_o sin_n 2._o rom._n 6.1_o 2._o that_o grace_n may_v abound_v god_n forbid_v what_o then_o shall_v we_o sin_v because_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n god_n forbid_v q._n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n then_o so_o far_o from_o suppose_v that_o condition_n of_o be_v always_o under_o sin_n to_o be_v his_o own_o constant_a condition_n sin_n freedom_n from_o sin_n or_o that_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o he_o even_o suppose_v many_o of_o the_o then_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o he_o write_v to_o be_v free_a of_o it_o how_o bespeak_v he_o then_o as_o in_o relation_n to_o this_o matter_n a._n how_o shall_v we_o that_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n 23._o rom._n 6.2_o 7_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 16_o 23._o live_v any_o long_a therein_o know_v you_o not_o that_o so_o many_o of_o we_o as_o be_v baptize_v into_o jesus_n christ_n be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o like_a as_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n even_o so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n for_o if_o we_o have_v be_v plant_v together_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o his_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v also_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o his_o resurrection_n know_v this_o that_o our_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v with_o he_o that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v not_o serve_v sin_n for_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a be_v free_a from_o sin_n likewise_o reckon_v you_o also_o yourselves_o to_o be_v dead_a indeed_o unto_o sin_n but_o alive_a unto_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n let_v not_o sin_n therefore_o reign_v in_o your_o mortal_a body_n that_o you_o shall_v obey_v it_o in_o the_o lust_n thereof_o neither_o yield_v you_o your_o member_n as_o instrument_n of_o unrighteousness_n unto_o sin_n but_o yield_v yourselves_o unto_o god_n as_o those_o that_o be_v alive_a from_o the_o dead_a and_o your_o member_n as_o instrument_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o god_n know_v you_o not_o that_o to_o who_o you_o yield_v yourselves_o servant_n to_o obey_v his_o servant_n you_o be_v to_o who_o you_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o of_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n but_o god_n be_v thank_v that_o you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n but_o you_o have_v obey_v from_o the_o heart_n that_o form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v unto_o you_o be_v then_o make_v free_a from_o sin_n you_o become_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n i_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n because_o of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o your_o flesh_n for_o as_o you_o have_v yield_v your_o member_n servant_n to_o uncleanness_n and_o to_o iniquity_n even_o so_o now_o yield_v your_o member_n servant_n to_o righteousness_n unto_o holiness_n for_o when_o you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n you_o be_v free_a from_o righteousness_n what_o fruit_n have_v you_o then_o in_o those_o thing_n whereof_o you_o be_v now_o ashamed_a for_o the_o end_n of_o those_o thing_n be_v death_n but_o now_o be_v make_v free_a from_o sin_n and_o become_v servant_n to_o god_n you_o have_v your_o fruit_n unto_o holiness_n and_o the_o end_n everlasting_a life_n for_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n q_o it_o will_v appear_v then_o that_o god_n require_v of_o we_o to_o be_v perfect_a a._n be_v you_o therefore_o perfect_a even_o as_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 5.48_o matt._n 5.48_o be_v perfect_a q._n be_v it_o then_o possible_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n a._n my_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a for_o this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 11.30_o matt._n 11.30_o that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a 5.3_o 1_o john_n 5.3_o q._n be_v it_o necessary_a then_o for_o salvation_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n a._n bless_a be_v they_o that_o do_v his_o commandment_n that_o they_o may_v have_v right_o to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n 22.14_o rev._n 22.14_o and_o may_v enter_v in_o through_o the_o gate_n into_o the_o city_n q._n do_v you_o understand_v by_o this_o perfection_n that_o any_o have_v so_o keep_v the_o commandment_n as_o never_o to_o have_v sin_v 1.10_o 1_o john_n 1.10_o a._n if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v not_o sin_v we_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o in_o we_o q_o do_v you_o understand_v that_o those_o who_o be_v perfect_a may_v say_v they_o have_v no_o sin_n or_o only_o that_o have_v sin_v and_o so_o have_v sin_n in_o respect_n they_o once_o sin_v as_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o passage_n cite_v mention_n may_v they_o notwithstanding_o thereof_o come_v to_o know_v forgiveness_n for_o the_o gild_n but_o also_o cleanse_v from_o the_o filth_n a._n if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o 1.8_o 1_o john_n 1.8_o if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n q._n this_o scripture_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o plain_a be_v compare_v with_o the_o other_o before_o mention_v but_o because_o some_o be_v apt_a to_o mistake_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o that_o apostle_n what_o say_v he_o elsewhere_o do_v he_o judge_v any_o can_v know_v god_n or_o be_v true_a christian_n who_o keep_v not_o the_o commandment_n a._n my_o little_a child_n these_o thing_n write_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o sin_n not_o 10._o 1_o john_n 2.1_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o &_o 3.2_o 10._o and_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o hereby_o do_v we_o know_v that_o we_o know_v he_o if_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o that_o say_v i_o know_v he_o and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o but_o who_o so_o keep_v his_o word_n in_o he_o very_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n perfect_v hereby_o know_v we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o he_o he_o that_o say_v he_o abide_v in_o he_o ought_v himself_o also_o to_o walk_v even_o as_o he_o walk_v belove_a now_o be_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o we_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v and_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o purify_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a whosoever_o commit_v sin_n transgress_v also_o the_o law_n for_o sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o you_o know_v that_o he_o be_v manifest_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o sin_n whosoever_o abide_v in_o
imagination_n be_v evil_a perpetual_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o proceed_v from_o this_o deprave_a and_o wicked_a seed_n man_n therefore_o as_o he_o be_v in_o this_o state_n can_v know_v nothing_o aright_o yea_o his_o thought_n and_o conception_n concern_v god_n and_o thing_n spiritual_a until_o he_o be_v dis-joined_n from_o this_o evil_a seed_n and_o unite_v to_o the_o divine_a light_n be_v unprofitable_a both_o to_o himself_o and_o other_o hence_o be_v reject_v the_o socinian_n and_o pelagian_a error_n in_o exalt_v a_o natural_a light_n as_o also_o the_o papist_n and_o most_o of_o protestant_n who_o affirm_v 2.1_o eph_n 2.1_o that_o man_n without_o the_o true_a grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v a_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n nevertheless_o this_o seed_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o infant_n until_o by_o transgression_n they_o actual_o join_v themselves_o therewith_o for_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n who_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o air._n the_o five_o and_o six_o proposition_n concern_v the_o universal_a redemption_n by_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o save_v and_o spiritual_a light_n wherewith_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v the_o five_o proposition_n 9_o ezek._n 18.23_o isai_n 49.6_o john_n 3.16_o and_o 1_o 9_o it_o be_v 2.11_o eph._n 5_o 13._o hebr._n 2_o 9_o god_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a love_n who_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v live_v and_o be_v save_v have_v so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o only_a son_n a_o light_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v who_o enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o make_v manifest_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v reprovable_a and_o teach_v all_o temperance_n righteousness_n and_o godliness_n and_o this_o light_n enlighten_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o in_o a_o day_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n if_o not_o resist_v nor_o be_v it_o lessvniversal_a than_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o death_n 15.22_o 1_o cor._n 15.22_o who_o taste_v death_n for_o every_o man._n for_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o die_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a the_o six_o proposition_n according_a to_o which_o principle_n or_o hypothesis_n all_o the_o objection_n against_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v easy_o solve_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a to_o recur_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o those_o other_o miraculous_a mean_n which_o they_o say_v god_n make_v use_v of_o to_o manifest_v the_o doctrine_n and_o history_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o such_o who_o live_v in_o those_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o outward_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v unknown_a have_v well_o improve_v the_o first_o and_o common_a grace_n for_o hence_o it_o well_o follow_v that_o as_o some_o of_o the_o old_a philosopher_n may_v have_v be_v save_v so_o also_o may_v now_o some_o who_o by_o providence_n be_v cast_v into_o those_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n be_v want_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n if_o they_o receive_v and_o resist_v not_o that_o grace_n 12.7_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o a_o manifestation_n whereof_o be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o this_o certain_a doctrine_n then_o be_v receive_v to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n and_o saving_n light_n and_o grace_n in_o all_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n both_o in_o the_o death_n of_o his_o belove_a son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o light_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v against_o all_o the_o objection_n of_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o therefore_o christ_n have_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n 9_o hebr._n 2_o 9_o not_o only_o for_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o some_o vain_o talk_v but_o for_o every_o one_o of_o all_o kind_n the_o benefit_n of_o who_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o such_o who_o have_v the_o distinct_a outward_a knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffer_v as_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o even_o unto_o those_o who_o be_v necessary_o exclude_v from_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o knowledge_n by_o some_o inevitable_a accident_n which_o knowledge_n we_o willing_o confess_v to_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a but_o not_o absolute_o needful_a unto_o such_o from_o who_o god_n himself_o have_v withhold_v it_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o death_n though_o ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n if_o they_o suffer_v his_o seed_n and_o light_n enlighten_v their_o heart_n to_o take_v place_n in_o which_o light_a communion_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v enjoy_v so_o as_o of_o wicked_a man_n to_o become_v holy_a and_o lover_n of_o that_o power_n by_o who_o inward_a and_o secret_a touch_v they_o feel_v themselves_o turn_v from_o the_o evil_a to_o the_o good_a and_o learn_v to_o do_v to_o other_o as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o in_o which_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v include_v as_o they_o have_v then_o false_o and_o erroneous_o teach_v who_o have_v deny_v christ_n to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o sufficient_o teach_v the_o truth_n who_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o have_v add_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n thereof_o in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_v its_o save_a effect_n among_o who_o the_o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n have_v be_v chief_o want_v and_o many_o other_o asserter_n of_o universal_a redemption_n in_o that_o they_o have_v not_o place_v the_o extent_n of_o this_o salvation_n in_o that_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n principle_n of_o light_n and_o life_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o one_o that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n which_o be_v excellent_o and_o evident_o hold_v forth_o in_o these_o scripture_n gen._n 6.3_o deut._n 30.14_o john_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o rom._n 10.8_o tit._n 2.11_o the_o seven_o proposition_n concern_v justification_n as_o many_o as_o resist_v not_o this_o light_n but_o receive_v the_o same_o in_o they_o be_v produce_v a_o holy_a pure_a and_o spiritual_a birth_n bring_v forth_o holiness_n righteousness_n purity_n and_o all_o these_o other_o bless_a fruit_n which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o which_o holy_a birth_n to_o wit_n jesus_n christ_n form_v within_o we_o and_o work_v his_o work_n in_o we_o as_o we_o be_v sanctify_v so_o be_v we_o justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n word_n but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o by_o our_o work_n wrought_v in_o our_o will_n nor_o yet_o by_o good_a work_n consider_v as_o of_o themselves_o but_o by_o christ_n who_o be_v both_o the_o gift_n and_o the_o giver_n and_o the_o cause_n produce_v the_o effect_n in_o we_o who_o as_o he_o have_v reconcile_v we_o while_o we_o be_v enemy_n do_v also_o in_o his_o wisdom_n save_v we_o and_o justify_v we_o after_o this_o manner_n as_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n elsewhere_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n 3.5_o titus_n 3.5_o and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o eight_o proposition_n concern_v perfection_n in_o who_o this_o holy_a and_o pure_a birth_n be_v full_o bring_v forth_o 3.6_o rom._n 6.14_o id._n 8.13_o id._n 6.2_o 18._o 1_o john_n 3.6_o the_o body_n of_o death_n and_o sin_n come_v to_o be_v crucify_a and_o remove_v and_o their_o heart_n unite_v and_o subject_v unto_o the_o truth_n so_o as_o not_o to_o obey_v any_o suggestion_n or_o temptation_n of_o the_o evil_a one_o but_o to_o be_v free_a from_o actual_a sin_v and_o transgress_v of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n perfect_a yet_o do_v this_o perfection_n still_o admit_v of_o a_o growth_n there_o remain_v a_o possibility_n of_o sin_v where_o the_o mind_n do_v not_o most_o diligent_o and_o watchful_o attend_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o nine_o proposition_n concern_v perseverance_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o fall_v from_o grace_n although_o this_o gift_n and_o inward_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a to_o work_v out_o salvation_n yet_o in_o those_o in_o who_o it_o be_v resist_v it_o both_o may_v and_o do_v become_v their_o condemnation_n moreover_o in_o who_o it_o have_v wrought_v in_o part_n to_o purify_v and_o sanctify_v they_o in_o order_n to_o their_o further_a perfection_n 6._o 1_o tim._n 1.6_o hebr._n 6.4_o 5_o 6._o by_o disobedience_n such_o may_v fall_v
adam_n sin_n be_v confess_v but_o that_o that_o infer_v necessary_o a_o gild_n in_o all_o other_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o be_v deny_v for_o though_o the_o whole_a outward_a creation_n suffer_v a_o decay_n by_o adam_n fall_n answer_v death_n the_o wage_n of_o sin_n answer_v which_o groan_v under_o vanity_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v say_v in_o job_n that_o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o clean_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o from_o thence_o follow_v that_o the_o herb_n earth_n and_o tree_n be_v sinner_n next_o death_n though_o a_o consequent_a of_o the_o fall_v incident_a to_o man_n earthly_a nature_n be_v not_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o saint_n but_o rather_o a_o sleep_n by_o which_o they_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v troublesome_a and_o painful_a to_o they_o as_o all_o real_a punishment_n for_o sin_n be_v that_o prop._n 5_o 6_o the_o apostle_n count_v it_o gain_v to_o i_o say_v he_o to_o die_v be_v gain_n phil._n 1.21_o some_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o make_v a_o objection_n further_o say_v object_n object_n that_o if_o adam_n sin_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o those_o who_o actual_o have_v not_o sin_v than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o infant_n be_v save_v but_o we_o be_v willing_a answ._n that_o this_o suppose_a absurdity_n shall_v be_v the_o consequence_n of_o our_o doctrine_n rather_o than_o that_o which_o it_o seem_v our_o adversary_n reckon_v not_o absurd_a though_o the_o undoubted_a and_o unavoidable_a consequence_n of_o they_o viz._n that_o many_o infant_n eternal_o perish_v not_o for_o any_o sin_n of_o their_o own_o but_o only_o for_o adam_n be_v iniquity_n where_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o let_v the_o controversy●ist_n ●ist_z commend_v both_o to_o the_o illuminate_v understanding_n of_o the_o christian_a reader_n this_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v both_o deny_v and_o refute_v by_o zwinglius_fw-la that_o eminent_a founder_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o switzerland_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la for_o which_o he_o be_v anathematise_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o five_o session_n we_o shall_v only_o add_v this_o information_n that_o we_o confess_v then_o that_o a_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v transmit_v to_o all_o man_n from_o adam_n although_o impute_v to_o none_o scripture-phrase_n original_a sin_n no_o scripture-phrase_n until_o by_o sin_v they_o actual_o join_v with_o it_o in_o which_o seed_n he_o give_v occasion_n to_o all_o to_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v the_o origin_n of_o all_o evil_a action_n and_o thought_n in_o man_n heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v in_o roman_n 5._o i_o e._n in_o which_o death_n all_o have_v sin_v for_o this_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v frequent_o call_v death_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o body_n of_o death_n see_v indeed_o it_o be_v a_o death_n to_o the_o life_n of_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n therefore_o its_o seed_n and_o its_o product_n be_v call_v the_o old_a man_n the_o old_a adam_n in_o which_o all_o sin_n be_v for_o which_o cause_n we_o use_v this_o name_n to_o express_v this_o sin_n and_o not_o that_o of_o original_a sin_n of_o which_o phrase_n the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n and_o under_o which_o invent_v and_o vnscriptural_a barbarism_n this_o notion_n of_o impute_v sin_n to_o infant_n take_v place_n among_o christian_n proposition_n v._n &_o vi_o concern_v the_o universal_a redemption_n by_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o save_v and_o spiritual_a light_n wherewith_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v proposition_n v._n god_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a love_n 11._o ezech._n 18.32_o and_o 33_o 11._o who_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v live_v and_o be_v save_v have_v so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o only_a son_n a_o light_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v joh._n 3.16_o who_o enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n joh._n 1.9_o and_o make_v manifest_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v reprovable_a eph._n 5.13_o and_o teach_v all_o temperance_n righteousness_n and_o godliness_n and_o this_o light_n lighten_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o in_o a_o day_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o reprove_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o individual_n and_o will_v work_v out_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o if_o not_o resist_v nor_o be_v it_o less_o universal_a than_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o death_n who_o taste_v death_n for_o every_o man._n for_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o die_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a 1_o cor._n 15.22_o proposition_n vi._n according_a to_o which_o principle_n or_o hypothesis_n all_o the_o objection_n against_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v easy_o solve_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a to_o recur_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o those_o other_o miraculous_a mean_n which_o they_o say_v god_n use_v to_o manifest_v the_o doctrine_n and_o history_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o such_o who_o live_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o outward_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v unknown_a have_v well_o improve_v the_o first_o and_o common_a grace_n for_o as_o hence_o it_o well_o follow_v that_o some_o of_o the_o old_a philosopher_n may_v have_v be_v save_v so_o also_o may_v some_o who_o by_o providence_n be_v cast_v into_o those_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n be_v want_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n if_o they_o receive_v and_o resist_v not_o that_o grace_n 12.7_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o a_o manifestation_n whereof_o be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o this_o most_o certain_a doctrine_n be_v then_o receive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n and_o saving_n light_n and_o grace_n in_o all_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n both_o in_o the_o death_n of_o his_o belove_a son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o light_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v against_o all_o the_o objection_n of_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o therefore_o christ_n have_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n 2.9_o hebr._n 2.9_o not_o only_o for_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o some_o vain_o talk_v but_o for_o every_o man_n of_o all_o kind_n the_o benefit_n of_o who_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o such_o who_o have_v the_o distinct_a outward_a knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n as_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o even_o unto_o those_o who_o be_v necessary_o exclude_v from_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o knowledge_n by_o some_o inevitable_a accident_n which_o knowledge_n we_o willing_o confess_v to_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a but_o not_o absolute_o needful_a unto_o such_o from_o who_o god_n himself_o have_v withhold_v it_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o death_n though_o ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n if_o they_o suffer_v his_o seed_n and_o light_n enlighten_v their_o heart_n to_o take_v place_n in_o which_o light_a communion_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v enjoy_v so_o as_o of_o wicked_a man_n to_o become_v holy_a and_o lover_n of_o that_o power_n by_o who_o inward_a and_o secret_a touch_v they_o feel_v themselves_o turn_v from_o the_o evil_a to_o the_o good_a and_o learn_v to_o do_v to_o other_o as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o in_o which_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v include_v as_o they_o have_v then_o false_o and_o erroneous_o teach_v who_o have_v deny_v christ_n to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o sufficient_o teach_v the_o truth_n who_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o have_v add_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n thereof_o in_o order_n to_o obtain_v its_o save_v effect_n among_o who_o the_o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n have_v be_v chief_o want_v and_o many_o other_o assertor_n of_o universal_a redemption_n in_o that_o they_o have_v not_o place_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o that_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n principle_n of_o light_n and_o life_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n which_o be_v excellent_o and_o evident_o hold_v forth_o in_o these_o scripture_n gen._n 6.3_o deut._n 30.14_o john_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o 16._o rom._n 10.8_o tit._n 2.11_o hitherto_o we_o have_v consider_v man_n be_v fall_v lose_v corrupt_a and_o degenerate_v condition_n now_o be_v it_o fit_a to_o inquire_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v he_o may_v come_v to_o be_v free_v out_o of_o this_o miserable_a
and_o always_o have_v deny_v that_o popish_a notion_n of_o meritum_fw-la ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la nevertheless_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n wherewith_o he_o have_v love_v mankind_n after_o he_o communicate_v to_o he_o his_o holy_a grace_n and_o spirit_n do_v according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n recompense_n and_o reward_n the_o good_a work_n of_o his_o child_n and_o therefore_o this_o merit_n of_o congruity_n or_o reward_n child_n god_n reward_v the_o good_a word_n of_o his_o child_n in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o positive_a for_o it_o we_o may_v not_o deny_v neither_o whole_o reject_v the_o word_n in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o scripture_n make_v use_v of_o it_o for_o the_o same_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v merit_n be_v also_o in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o translator_n express_v it_o worth_a or_o worthy_a as_o matth._n 3.8_o 1_o thess._n 2.12_o 2_o thess._n 1.5_o 8._o concern_v which_o r._n baxter_n say_v in_o the_o above_o cite_a book_n p._n 8._o but_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n as_o promise_n be_v a_o obligation_n and_o the_o thing_n promised_n be_v say_v to_o be_v debt_n so_o the_o performer_n of_o the_o condition_n be_v call_v worthy_a and_o that_o which_o they_o perform_v merit_n although_o proper_o all_o be_v of_o grace_n and_o not_o of_o debt_n also_o those_o who_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n frequent_o use_v this_o word_n of_o merit_n who_o saying_n concern_v this_o matter_n i_o think_v not_o needful_a to_o insert_v because_o it_o be_v not_o doubt_v but_o evident_a that_o many_o protestant_n be_v not_o averse_a from_o this_o word_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o use_v it_o the_o apology_n for_o the_o augustan_n confession_n art_n 20._o have_v these_o word_n we_o agree_v that_o work_n be_v true_o meritorious_a not_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o justification_n but_o they_o be_v meritorious_a of_o ●ther_n reward_v corporal_a and_o spiritual_a which_o be_v indeed_o as_o well_o in_o this_o life_n as_o after_o this_o life_n and_o further_o see_v work_n prop._n 8_o be_v a_o certain_a fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n they_o be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v meritorious_a it_o be_v right_o say_v that_o a_o reward_n be_v due_a to_o they_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o oldenburgh_n the_o electoral_a divine_n p._n 110._o &_o 265._o say_v oldenburgh_n conference_n of_o oldenburgh_n in_o this_o sense_n our_o church_n also_o be_v not_o averse_a from_o the_o word_n merit_n use_v by_o the_o father_n neither_o therefore_o do_v they_o defend_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o merit_n g._n vossius_fw-la merit_n g._n vossius_fw-la of_o the_o word_n merit_n in_o his_o theological_n these_o concern_v the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n say_v we_o have_v not_o adventure_v to_o condemn_v the_o word_n merit_n whole_o as_o be_v that_o which_o both_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n use_v and_o also_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v use_v in_o their_o confession_n now_o that_o god_n judge_v and_o accept_v man_n according_a to_o their_o work_n be_v beyond_o doubt_n to_o those_o that_o serious_o will_v read_v and_o consider_v these_o scripture_n matth._n 17.26_o rom._n 2.6_o 7_o 10._o 2_o cor._n 5.10_o james_n 1.25_o hebr._n 10.35_o 1_o pet._n 1.17_o rev._n 22.12_o §_o xiii_o and_o to_o conclude_v this_o theme_n let_v none_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o mock_v god_n suppose_v themselves_o justify_v and_o accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o suffering_n while_o they_o remain_v unsanctified_a and_o unjustified_a in_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o pollute_v in_o their_o sin_n leave_v their_o hope_n prove_v that_o of_o the_o hypocrite_n which_o perish_v neither_o let_v any_o foolish_o imagine_v 8.13_o job_n 8.13_o that_o they_o can_v by_o their_o own_o work_n or_o by_o the_o performance_n of_o any_o ceremony_n or_o tradition_n or_o by_o the_o give_n of_o gold_n or_o money_n or_o by_o afflict_v their_o body_n in_o will-worship_n and_o voluntary_a humility_n or_o foolish_o strive_v to_o conform_v their_o way_n to_o the_o ouward_a letter_n of_o the_o law_n flatter_v themselves_o that_o they_o merit_n before_o god_n or_o draw_v a_o debt_n upon_o he_o humble_a the_o hope_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n shall_v perish_v but_o grace_n be_v to_o the_o humble_a or_o that_o any_o man_n or_o man_n have_v power_n to_o make_v such_o kind_n of_o thing_n effectual_a to_o their_o justification_n lest_o they_o be_v find_v foolish_a boaster_n and_o stranger_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n indeed_o but_o bless_v for_o ever_o be_v they_o that_o have_v true_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o vnworthiness_n and_o sinfulness_n and_o have_v see_v all_o their_o own_o endeavour_n and_o performance_n fruitless_a and_o vain_a and_o behold_v their_o own_o emptiness_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o their_o vain_a hope_n faith_n and_o confidence_n while_o they_o remain_v inward_o prick_v pursue_v and_o condemn_v by_o god_n holy_a witness_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o so_o have_v apply_v themselves_o thereto_o and_o suffer_v his_o grace_n to_o work_v in_o they_o be_v become_v change_v and_o renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o their_o mind_n pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o know_v jesus_n arisen_a in_o they_o work_v both_o the_o will_n and_o the_o deed_n and_o so_o have_v put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o effect_n be_v clothe_v with_o he_o &_o partake_v of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o nature_n such_o can_v draw_v near_o to_o the_o lord_n with_o boldness_n and_o know_v their_o acceptance_n in_o and_o by_o he_o in_o who_o and_o in_o as_o many_o as_o be_v find_v in_o he_o the_o father_n be_v well-pleased_n proposition_n viii_o concern_v perfection_n in_o who_o this_o pure_a and_o holy_a birth_n be_v full_o bring_v forth_o the_o body_n of_o death_n and_o sin_n come_v to_o be_v crucify_a and_o remove_v and_o their_o heart_n unite_v and_o subject_v to_o the_o truth_n so_o as_o not_o to_o obey_v any_o suggestion_n or_o temptation_n of_o the_o evil_a one_o to_o be_v free_a from_o actual_a sin_v and_o transgress_v of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n perfect_a yet_o do_v this_o perfection_n still_o admit_v of_o a_o growth_n and_o there_o remain_v always_o in_o some_o part_n a_o possibility_n of_o sin_v where_o the_o mind_n do_v not_o most_o diligent_o and_o watchful_o attend_v unto_o the_o lord_n §_o i._o since_o we_o have_v place_v justification_n in_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n form_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o the_o heart_n there_o work_v his_o work_n of_o righteousness_n and_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o question_n be_v how_o far_o he_o may_v prevail_v in_o we_o while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n or_o we_o over_o our_o soul_n enemy_n in_o and_o by_o his_o strength_n those_o that_o plead_v for_o justification_n whole_o without_o they_o mere_o by_o imputative_a righteousness_n deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o be_v clothe_v with_o real_a and_o inward_a righteousness_n do_v consequent_o affirm_v catechism_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o westminster_n large_a catechism_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o man_n even_o the_o best_a of_o man_n to_o be_v free_a of_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n which_o they_o say_v no_o man_n ever_o be_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o none_o can_v neither_o of_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o grace_n receive_v in_o this_o life_n o_o wicked_a say_v against_o the_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n perfect_o but_o that_o every_o man_n do_v break_v the_o commandment_n in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n whence_o they_o also_o affirm_v as_o be_v a_o little_a before_o observe_v that_o the_o very_o best_a action_n of_o the_o saint_n their_o prayer_n their_o worship_n be_v impure_a and_o pollute_a god_n whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n we_o on_o the_o contrary_a though_o we_o free_o acknowledge_v this_o of_o the_o natural_a fall_v man_n in_o his_o first_o state_n whatever_o his_o profession_n or_o pretence_n may_v be_v so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v vnconvert_v and_o unregenerate_a yet_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o those_o in_o who_o christ_n come_v to_o be_v form_v and_o the_o new_a part_n i_o man_n bring_v forth_o and_o bear_v of_o the_o incorruptible_a seed_n as_o that_o birth_n and_o man_n in_o union_n therewith_o natural_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o it_o be_v possible_a so_o far_o to_o keep_v to_o it_o state_v controversy_n state_v as_o not_o to_o be_v find_v daily_a transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o more_o clear_a state_v of_o the_o controversy_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v §_o ii_o first_o that_o we_o place_v not_o this_o possibility_n in_o man_n be_v own_o will_n
of_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n our_o receive_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n from_o god_n have_v a_o necessary_a respect_n to_o our_o pray_v because_o if_o we_o ask_v he_o have_v promise_v we_o shall_v receive_v now_o the_o communion_n or_o participation_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o such_o necessary_a relation_n to_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o wine_n for_o if_o it_o have_v any_o such_o necessary_a relation_n it_o will_v either_o be_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o from_o some_o divine_a precept_n but_o we_o shall_v show_v it_o be_v from_o neither_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n first_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o because_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o spiritual_a exercise_n and_o all_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n that_o we_o become_v real_a partaker_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o not_o the_o body_n that_o be_v nourish_v by_o it_o but_o to_o eat_v bread_n and_o drink_n wine_n be_v a_o natural_a act_n which_o in_o itself_o add_v nothing_o to_o the_o soul_n neither_o have_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a in_o it_o because_o the_o most_o carnal_a man_n that_o be_v can_v as_o full_o as_o perfect_o and_o as_o whole_o eat_v bread_n and_o drink_n wine_n as_o the_o most_o spiritual_a second_o their_o relation_n be_v not_o by_o nature_n else_o they_o will_v infer_v one_o another_o but_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o many_o eat_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o wine_n even_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v consecrate_v &_o transubstantiate_v into_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n who_o notwithstanding_o have_v not_o life_n eternal_a have_v not_o christ_n dwell_v in_o they_o nor_o do_v live_v by_o he_o blood_n the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n without_o this_o ceremony_n use_v be_v true_a partaker_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o all_o do_v who_o true_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n without_o the_o use_n of_o this_o ceremony_n as_o all_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n do_v before_o this_o ordinance_n as_o they_o account_v it_o be_v institute_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n under_o the_o law_n that_o have_v any_o direct_a or_o necessary_a relation_n hereunto_o tho'_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o age_n be_v indispensible_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o as_o for_o the_o paschal_n end·_v paschal_n the_o paschal_n lamb_n 〈◊〉_d end·_v lamb_n the_o whole_a end_n of_o it_o be_v signify_v particular_o exod_a 13.8_o 9_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v thereby_o be_v keep_v in_o remembrance_n of_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n second_o it_o have_v no_o relation_n by_o divine_a precept_n for_o if_o it_o have_v it_o will_v be_v mention_v in_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n account_v the_o institution_n of_o it_o or_o else_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o by_o the_o saint_n record_v in_o scripture_n but_o so_o it_o be_v not_o for_o as_o to_o the_o institution_n or_o rather_o narration_n of_o christ_n practice_n in_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v it_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n mark_n and_o luke_n in_o the_o first_o two_o there_o be_v only_o a_o account_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n break_v bread_n and_o give_v it_o his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 22.19_o matth._n 26_o 26._o mark_v 14.22_o luke_n 22.19_o and_o bless_v the_o cup_n he_o give_v it_o they_o to_o drink_v say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o nothing_o of_o any_o desire_n to_o they_o to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o last_o therein_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n or_o narration_n of_o christ_n practice_n therein_o after_o the_o bread_n but_o before_o the_o blessing_n or_o give_v they_o the_o wine_n he_o bid_v they_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o what_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o this_o practice_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o but_o what_o necessary_a relation_n have_v all_o this_o to_o the_o believer_n partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o end_n of_o this_o for_o which_o they_o be_v to_o do_v it_o if_o at_o all_o be_v to_o remember_v christ_n which_o the_o apostle_n yet_o more_o particular_o express_v 1_o cor._n 11.26_o to_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n but_o to_o remember_v the_o lord_n or_o declare_v his_o death_n which_o be_v the_o special_a and_o particular_a end_n annex_v to_o the_o use_v of_o this_o ceremony_n be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n neither_o have_v they_o any_o more_o necessary_a relation_n to_o it_o than_o any_o other_o two_o different_a spiritual_a duty_n for_o tho'_o they_o that_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v but_o remember_v he_o yet_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o death_n may_v be_v remember_v as_o none_o can_v deny_v where_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o true_o partake_v of_o so_o that_o since_o the_o very_a particular_a and_o express_a end_n of_o this_o ceremony_n may_v be_v witness_v to_o wit_n the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o lord_n death_n and_o yet_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o partake_v of_o it_o can_v have_v have_v any_o necessary_a relation_n to_o it_o else_o the_o partake_n thereof_o will_v have_v be_v the_o end_n of_o it_o and_o can_v not_o have_v be_v attain_v without_o this_o participation_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o may_v well_o infer_v hence_o that_o since_o the_o positive_a end_n of_o this_o ceremony_n be_v not_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o whoever_o partake_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v but_o remember_v he_o that_o therefore_o such_o need_v not_o this_o ceremony_n to_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n call_v the_o bread_n here_o his_o body_n object_n object_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n therefore_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o special_a relation_n to_o his_o disciple_n partake_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o thing_n i_o answer_v his_o calling_n the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n answ._n will_v yet_o infer_v no_o such_o thing_n though_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o jesus_n christ_n in_o all_o thing_n he_o do_v yea_o and_o from_o the_o use_n of_o all_o natural_a thing_n take_v occasion_n to_o raise_v the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o hearer_n to_o spiritual_n hence_o from_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n her_o draw_v water_n 4.14_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n john_n 4.14_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o tell_v she_o of_o that_o live_a water_n which_o whoso_o drink_v of_o shall_v never_o thirst_v which_o indeed_o be_v all_o one_o with_o his_o blood_n here_o speak_v of_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o that_o well_o or_o water_n have_v any_o necessary_a relation_n to_o the_o live_a water_n feeding_n the_o well_o the_o loaf_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n christ_n take_v occasion_n from_o to_o show_v the_o inward_a feeding_n or_o the_o live_a water_n to_o it_o etc._n etc._n so_o christ_n take_v occasion_n from_o the_o jew_n follow_v he_o for_o the_o loaf_n to_o tell_v they_o of_o this_o spiritual_a bread_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v more_o necessary_a for_o they_o to_o feed_v upon_o it_o will_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o their_o follow_v he_o for_o the_o loaf_n have_v any_o necessary_a relation_n thereunto_o so_o also_o christ_n here_o be_v at_o supper_n with_o his_o disciple_n take_v occasion_n from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v before_o they_o to_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o as_o that_o bread_n which_o he_o break_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o wine_n which_o he_o bless_a and_o give_v unto_o they_o do_v contribute_v to_o the_o preserve_n and_o nourish_v of_o their_o body_n so_o be_v he_o also_o to_o give_v his_o body_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o therefore_o the_o very_a end_n propose_v in_o this_o ceremony_n to_o those_o that_o observe_v it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o memorial_n of_o his_o death_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o call_v the_o bread_n which_o he_o break_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n the_o communion_n of_o his_o blood_n i_o do_v most_o willing_o subscribe_v unto_o it_o but_o do_v deny_v that_o this_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o outward_a bread_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v evince_v but_o the_o contrary_a be_v manifest_a from_o the_o context_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o chapter_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o
and_o the_o apprehension_n and_o sense_n i_o have_v of_o he_o be_v this_o he_o love_v the_o truth_n and_o way_n of_o god_n as_o reveal_v among_o we_o above_o all_o the_o world_n and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o it_o before_o man_n but_o bold_a and_o able_a in_o maintain_v it_o sound_v in_o judgement_n strong_a in_o argument_n cheerful_a in_o travail_n and_o suffering_n of_o a_o pleasant_a disposition_n yet_o solid_a plain_a and_o exemplary_a in_o his_o conversation_n he_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n a_o good_a christian_a a_o able_a minister_n a_o dutiful_a son_n a_o love_a husband_n a_o tender_a and_o careful_a father_n a_o easy_a master_n and_o a_o good_a and_o kind_a neighbour_n and_o friend_n these_o eminent_a quality_n in_o one_o that_o have_v employ_v they_o so_o serviceable_o and_o that_o have_v not_o live_v much_o above_o half_a the_o life_n of_o a_o man_n have_v outlive_v his_o father_n but_o four_o year_n and_o die_v at_o least_o thirty_o year_n short_a of_o his_o age_n aggravate_v the_o loss_n of_o he_o especial_o in_o that_o nation_n where_o he_o live_v o_o friend_n if_o precious_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o death_n of_o his_o saint_n ought_v not_o their_o labour_n and_o death_n to_o be_v precious_a to_o the_o lord_n people_n therefore_o i_o exhort_v those_o that_o have_v survive_v this_o and_o other_o worthy_a and_o honourable_a brethren_n to_o take_v care_n that_o their_o mind_n be_v not_o overcharge_v and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o suffer_v their_o first_o love_n on_o any_o score_n to_o cool_v to_o those_o that_o travail_n and_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n for_o their_o good_a but_o that_o through_o their_o faithfulness_n they_o may_v come_v to_o partake_v of_o like_a precious_a ministry_n as_o well_o as_o of_o like_a precious_a faith_n that_o so_o the_o great_a harvest_n that_o be_v at_o the_o door_n may_v be_v supply_v with_o able_a and_o diligent_a labourer_n but_o more_o especial_o you_o of_o the_o scotch_a nation_n and_o most_o of_o all_o you_o his_o near_a tender_a and_o affectionate_a relation_n wait_v to_o feel_v your_o loss_n make_v up_o in_o and_o by_o he_o that_o give_v liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o who_o be_v the_o best_a teacher_n husband_n father_n and_o master_n who_o repair_v our_o loss_n with_o advantage_n for_o in_o he_o we_o loose_v nothing_o that_o we_o loose_v because_o we_o have_v it_o again_o with_o advantage_n even_o in_o this_o life_n and_o fellowship_n that_o outlive_v time_n and_o endure_v and_o abide_v forever_o in_o which_o the_o lord_n preserve_v we_o all_o to_o the_o end_n of_o our_o race_n that_o we_o may_v run_v it_o with_o steadfastness_n and_o finish_v it_o with_o everlasting_a joy_n william_n penn._n patrick_n livingstone_n his_o testimony_n concern_v robert_n barclay_n there_o be_v something_o that_o rest_v upon_o my_o spirit_n to_o say_v concern_v my_o dear_o belove_a friend_n and_o kinsman_n robert_n barclay_n who_o be_v not_o only_o my_o kinsman_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o of_o a_o near_o and_o dear_a kindred_n and_o relation_n of_o a_o more_o noble_a seed_n and_o offspring_n which_o be_v not_o corruptible_a but_o incorruptible_a and_o my_o dear_a fellow-labourer_n in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o my_o fellow-sufferer_n for_o the_o truth_n in_o aberdeen-prison_n and_o i_o have_v more_o in_o my_o heart_n concern_v he_o than_o i_o can_v express_v nor_o do_v i_o find_v it_o meet_v to_o say_v all_o i_o can_v true_o testify_v of_o he_o for_o i_o have_v some_o small_a knowledge_n of_o he_o before_o he_o come_v to_o profess_v the_o truth_n and_o ever_o since_o he_o come_v forth_o among_o we_o i_o have_v have_v many_o opportunity_n to_o be_v refresh_v with_o he_o in_o his_o doctrine_n after_o he_o come_v to_o have_v a_o public_a testimony_n among_o we_o and_o also_o in_o his_o conversation_n both_o before_o and_o since_o he_o be_v all-along_a a_o man_n for_o peace_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o strife_n and_o dissension_n but_o be_v a_o peacemaker_n i_o never_o know_v he_o at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v in_o passion_n or_o anger_n he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o sweet_a pleasant_a and_o cheerful_a temper_n and_o above_o many_o for_o evenness_n of_o spirit_n a_o man_n of_o deep_a reach_n in_o his_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o also_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o concern_v he_o to_o know_v of_o this_o life_n among_o men._n he_o be_v quick_a and_o ready_a in_o his_o understanding_n of_o matter_n of_o difference_n or_o controversy_n and_o have_v a_o notable_a way_n of_o decide_v and_o compose_v of_o they_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o public_a spirit_n and_o labour_v for_o the_o public_a good_a of_o all_o but_o especial_o of_o those_o he_o be_v in_o fellowship_n with_o both_o as_o to_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a he_o be_v a_o blameless_a man_n in_o his_o conversation_n and_o he_o be_v both_o solid_a sound_v and_o comprehensive_a in_o his_o write_n and_o as_o for_o his_o doctrine_n he_o be_v plain_a and_o clear_a to_o the_o mean_a capacity_n discreet_a and_o oblige_v therein_o and_o he_o be_v a_o man_n general_o belove_v of_o all_o both_o of_o great_a and_o small_a unless_o it_o be_v those_o that_o hate_v he_o for_o the_o truth_n be_v sake_n and_o his_o vindicate_v of_o it_o both_o in_o word_n and_o write_n against_o those_o that_o oppose_v it_o as_o his_o write_n will_v plain_o demonstrate_v to_o all_o impartial_a reader_n of_o they_o and_o courteous_a reader_n i_o be_v now_o satisfy_v with_o many_o more_o that_o he_o be_v at_o his_o rest_n with_o the_o lord_n and_o reap_v the_o reward_n of_o his_o trial_n travail_n and_o suffering_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v sake_n both_o inward_o and_o outward_o and_o now_o be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o what_o envy_n and_o malice_n can_v do_v against_o he_o his_o write_n be_v recommend_v to_o thy_o serious_a and_o impartial_a perusal_n wherein_o thou_o may_v see_v more_o of_o he_o than_o at_o present_a i_o can_v say_v and_o so_o i_o remain_v a_o lover_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n patrick_n livingstone_n aberdeen_n the_o 16_o day_n of_o the_o one_a month_n 1691._o the_o testimony_n of_o andrew_n jaffray_n concern_v robert_n barclay_n this_o testimony_n i_o have_v in_o my_o heart_n to_o give_v forth_o concern_v my_o dear_a brother_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o lord_n worthy_n and_o have_v obtain_v the_o crown_n of_o victory_n over_o all_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o his_o instrument_n who_o still_o seek_v to_o make_v war_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o woman_n seed_n who_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o they_o and_o their_o rage_n and_o enmity_n be_v limit_v bless_a be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v number_v and_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n pitch_v their_o tent_n about_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o in_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o amid_o all_o the_o rage_n and_o slanderous_a tongue_n of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n as_o this_o faithful_a and_o worthy_a servant_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o everlasting_a truth_n be_v a_o live_a witness_n of_o god_n faithfulness_n and_o power_n in_o his_o preservation_n who_o be_v dead_a as_o to_o the_o body_n yet_o speak_v and_o live_v and_o walk_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o in_o who_o his_o delight_n and_o joy_n be_v while_o in_o the_o body_n beyond_o all_o the_o honour_n vain_a pleasure_n and_o enjoyment_n from_o below_o and_o though_o the_o lord_n have_v endue_v he_o with_o many_o large_a gift_n and_o ability_n even_o as_o a_o man_n beyond_o many_o as_o be_v well_o know_v so_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o converse_v with_o the_o great_a yet_o know_v it_o be_v to_o many_o of_o the_o upright_a that_o his_o chief_a desire_n and_o delight_n be_v to_o lay_v out_o all_o these_o part_n and_o qualification_n for_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o but_o especial_o to_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o many_o great_a service_n for_o truth_n and_o deliverance_n of_o suffer_a friend_n which_o the_o lord_n make_v he_o a_o instrument_n of_o both_o in_o his_o own_o native_a country_n and_o in_o other_o nation_n can_v bear_v witness_n so_o that_o i_o may_v true_o say_v in_o all_o his_o great_a endowment_n it_o be_v his_o delight_n to_o make_v they_o serviceable_a to_o the_o true_a israel_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sweet_a savour_n and_o memorial_n shall_v live_v in_o many_o of_o their_o heart_n and_o among_o all_o sober_a discreet_a and_o moderate_a people_n who_o know_v he_o to_o generation_n to_o come_v and_o i_o be_o very_o bold_a to_o say_v his_o death_n can_v not_o but_o be_v matter_n of_o exercise_n and_o sorrow_n to_o all_o he_o be_v a_o man_n that_o lay_v out_o himself_o in_o the_o
as_o to_o the_o first_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n jesus_n both_o as_o he_o appear_v and_o be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o as_o he_o be_v make_v manifest_a and_o reveal_v in_o we_o and_o thus_o we_o do_v not_o divide_v christ_n nor_o his_o righteousness_n without_o from_o his_o righteousness_n within_o but_o we_o do_v receive_v and_o embrace_v he_o whole_o and_o undivided_a the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n jeremiah_n 23.6.1.30_o by_o which_o we_o be_v both_o make_v and_o account_v righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o which_o ought_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v divide_v we_o christ_n righteousness_n we_o and_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n whereby_o his_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n death_n and_o suffering_n without_o become_v profitable_a unto_o we_o and_o be_v make_v we_o be_v by_o receive_v he_o and_o become_v one_o with_o he_o in_o our_o heart_n embrace_v and_o entertain_v that_o holy_a seed_n which_o as_o it_o be_v embrace_v and_o entertain_v become_v a_o holy_a birth_n in_o we_o which_o in_o scripture_n be_v call_v christ_n form_v within_o christ_n within_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n gal._n 4.19_o coloss._n 1.27_o by_o which_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n be_v do_v away_o and_o we_o cleanse_v and_o wash_v and_o purge_v from_o our_o sin_n not_o imaginarily_o but_o real_o and_o we_o real_o and_o true_o make_v righteous_a and_o holy_a and_o pure_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n which_o righteousness_n be_v proper_o enough_o say_v to_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v immediate_o from_o he_o and_o stand_v in_o he_o and_o be_v as_o unseparable_a from_o he_o as_o the_o beam_n be_v from_o the_o sun_n and_o it_o be_v through_o the_o union_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o his_o righteous_a life_n and_o nature_n bring_v forth_o in_o we_o and_o we_o make_v one_o with_o it_o as_o the_o branch_n be_v with_o the_o vine_n that_o we_o have_v a_o true_a title_n and_o right_n to_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o suffer_v for_o we_o for_o be_v so_o close_o unite_v to_o christ_n his_o righteousness_n become_v we_o his_o obedience_n we_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n we_o thus_o we_o know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n be_v make_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n philip._n 3_o 10._o by_o which_o nearness_n and_o fellowship_n we_o come_v to_o know_v a_o unity_n with_o the_o suffer_a seed_n both_o in_o ourselves_o and_o other_o and_o therein_o to_o travel_v for_o its_o raise_n and_o deliverance_n which_o yet_o no_o way_n derogate_v from_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n he_o offer_v up_o unto_o god_n without_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n while_o he_o humble_v himself_o unto_o death_n even_o unto_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n this_o be_v a_o honest_a and_o plain_a and_o true_a account_n of_o our_o belief_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o be_v in_o substance_n one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o at_o sundry_a time_n thou_o and_o thy_o brethren_n haste_v receive_v from_o we_o notwithstanding_o the_o bare_a scanty_a and_o disingenuous_a account_n thou_o give_v of_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n second_o as_o to_o the_o vast_a difference_n that_o lie_v betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n any_o who_o be_v not_o wilful_o blind_a may_v see_v it_o who_o know_v their_o doctrine_n and_o we_o in_o this_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o the_o work_v of_o christ_n wrought_v in_o we_o nor_o the_o work_n which_o we_o work_v in_o his_o spirit_n and_o power_n that_o we_o rest_v and_o rely_v upon_o as_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o justification_n justification_n how_o christ_n be_v our_o justification_n but_o it_o be_v christ_n himself_o the_o worker_n reveal_v in_o we_o indwelling_a in_o we_o his_o life_n and_o spirit_n cover_v we_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o we_o feel_v ourselves_o in_o he_o feel_v he_o in_o we_o and_o his_o spirit_n his_o life_n cover_v we_o we_o feel_v our_o justification_n and_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o he_o and_o through_o he_o the_o alone_a mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man._n now_o this_o manner_n of_o justification_n by_o the_o indwel_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o his_o spirit_n be_v not_o hold_v by_o the_o papist_n but_o be_v express_o deny_v by_o they_o and_o dispute_v against_o particular_o by_o bellarmine_n and_o christ_n jesus_n himself_o be_v both_o first_o and_o last_o our_o justification_n and_o foundation_n of_o it_o and_o as_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a for_o it_o and_o so_o we_o may_v not_o deny_v it_o but_o plead_v for_o it_o according_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o we_o be_v teach_v of_o he_o but_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o be_v more_o than_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n christ._n work_v wrought_v in_o christ._n and_o therefore_o be_v we_o justify_v in_o our_o work_n which_o we_o work_v in_o he_o and_o because_o the_o lord_n accept_v and_o justifi_v we_o in_o he_o therefore_o he_o accept_v and_o justifi_v our_o work_n wrought_v in_o he_o and_o accept_v and_o justifi_v we_o in_o relation_n to_o these_o work_n and_o though_o it_o have_v be_v say_v by_o we_o that_o good_a work_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v rather_o his_o than_o we_o be_v meritorious_a yet_o we_o understand_v it_o not_o any_o other_o way_n than_o thus_o that_o all_o their_o merit_n or_o worth_n be_v from_o christ._n and_o see_v they_o be_v say_v in_o scripture_n to_o have_v their_o reward_n and_o reward_n and_o merit_n be_v relative_n term_n infer_v one_o another_o in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v reward_v they_o may_v also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v meritorious_a which_o yet_o hinder_v not_o the_o freedom_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o justification_n for_o we_o do_v very_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o both_o the_o work_n and_o the_o reward_n be_v of_o the_o freegrace_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n give_v we_o all_o thing_n not_o of_o debt_n or_o as_o be_v in_o our_o debt_n but_o of_o free-gift_n and_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o wisdom_n have_v see_v it_o meet_v to_o promise_v a_o reward_n to_o good_a work_n and_o so_o he_o do_v reward_v they_o because_o of_o his_o goodness_n and_o faithfulness_n and_o not_o because_o he_o be_v addebt_v unto_o any_o of_o we_o otherwise_o then_o as_o he_o have_v bind_v himself_o by_o his_o promise_n and_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o that_o false_a popish_a doctrine_n which_o affirm_v that_o man_n deserve_v a_o reward_n from_o god_n for_o good_a work_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o strict_a justice_n without_o respect_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o if_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o all_o papist_n do_v not_o say_v so_o but_o be_v more_o moderate_a well_o then_o i_o say_v if_o some_o of_o they_o be_v moderate_a and_o pass_v from_o the_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o popery_n and_o speak_v that_o which_o be_v true_a if_o other_o speak_v what_o be_v true_a also_o in_o that_o particular_a shall_v the_o truth_n be_v accuse_v and_o condemn_v for_o rank_a popery_n because_o some_o papist_n at_o time_n confess_v to_o it_o you_o yourselves_o know_v that_o papist_n contradict_v one_o another_o in_o divers_a thing_n and_o where_o man_n direct_o contradict_v one_o another_o one_o of_o the_o side_n must_v speak_v true_a but_o as_o to_o that_o wherein_o the_o justification_n stand_v and_o on_o which_o it_o be_v ground_v to_o wit_n christ_n himself_o as_o indwelling_a in_o the_o saint_n none_o of_o all_o the_o papist_n for_o aught_o we_o ever_o hear_v or_o read_v do_v own_o it_o but_o be_v against_o it_o again_o as_o to_o the_o work_n by_o which_o the_o papist_n seek_v to_o be_v justify_v pretend_v the_o papist_n justify_v work_n pretend_v they_o be_v such_o as_o we_o believe_v none_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o viz._n their_o outward_a observation_n their_o invocation_n of_o saint_n bow_v to_o image_n say_v ave_fw-la maries_n tell_v their_o bead_n their_o pilgrimage_n their_o whip_a themselves_o their_o keep_n lend_v and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a work_n of_o voluntary_a humility_n by_o which_o they_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v though_o they_o be_v evil_a work_n as_o not_o do_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o power_n of_o god_n nor_o do_v it_o serve_v thy_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o papist_n think_v not_o that_o work_v consider_v as_o evil_a and_o sinful_a be_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v they_o for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o papist_n think_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n sinful_a and_o evil_a but_o this_o be_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o papist_n think_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n which_o be_v real_o
you_o put_v upon_o they_o and_o whereas_o some_o object_n it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o they_o but_o of_o such_o i_o answer_v but_o that_o such_o include_v they_o and_o all_o other_o who_o be_v like_o they_o in_o harmlessness_n otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v be_v exclude_v he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v it_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o bid_v suffer_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o but_o beside_o the_o 18_o the_o chapt._n verse_n 20._o of_o ezekiel_n be_v a_o plain_a proof_n the_o soul_n that_o sin_v shall_v die_v the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o father_n iniquity_n unless_o that_o the_o son_n be_v find_v act_v the_o same_o iniquity_n and_o continue_v in_o it_o for_o than_o he_o visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n now_o thou_o have_v produce_v no_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o any_o infant_n do_v perish_v and_o indeed_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o scripture_n for_o it_o but_o against_o it_o second_o thou_o say_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o infant_n die_v in_o their_o infancy_n stand_v not_o in_o need_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o saviour_n for_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n sin_n infant_n save_v from_o sin_n answ._n he_o be_v a_o saviour_n not_o only_o to_o save_v from_o sin_n but_o also_o from_o the_o consequence_n of_o sin_n and_o not_o only_o from_o the_o fruit_n and_o branch_n of_o it_o but_o from_o the_o seed_n and_o they_o be_v save_v from_o sin_n who_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o fall_v into_o it_o and_o so_o these_o infant_n who_o the_o lord_n take_v away_o in_o their_o infancy_n that_o they_o may_v not_o sin_v be_v save_v from_o it_o it_o be_v salvation_n to_o be_v keep_v from_o fall_v into_o a_o pit_n as_o true_o as_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o it_o after_o the_o fall_n in_o and_o as_o for_o that_o scripture_n it_o make_v against_o you_o matth._n 1.12_o for_o it_o speak_v of_o a_o salvation_n from_o sin_n whereas_o you_o dream_v of_o a_o salvation_n in_o your_o sin_n nor_o do_v rom._n 7.24_o speak_v of_o infant_n so_o thy_o cite_n it_o here_o be_v impertinent_a and_o though_o there_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o cry_v out_o for_o deliverance_n from_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n yet_o there_o be_v also_o a_o time_n of_o deliverance_n from_o it_o even_o before_o the_o lay_n down_o of_o the_o outward_a body_n as_o be_v plain_a from_o rom._n 6.6_o 7._o know_v this_o that_o the_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a be_v free_v from_o sin_n yet_o we_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v great_a occasion_n to_o be_v low_a and_o to_o be_v in_o great_a fear_n and_o care_n lest_o sin_n which_o be_v once_o crucify_a revive_v again_o page_n 48._o thou_o charge_v we_o as_o hold_v a_o fall_n away_o from_o regeneration_n and_o as_o agree_v therein_o with_o arminian_o but_o if_o the_o arminian_o hold_v a_o fall_n away_o from_o regeneration_n we_o hold_v no_o such_o matter_n for_o those_o who_o fall_v away_o never_o attain_v unto_o the_o regeneration_n and_o so_o be_v never_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o only_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o it_o by_o have_v attain_v to_o some_o beginning_n of_o faith_n themselves_o the_o fall_v away_o from_o faith_n be_v of_o themselves_o from_o which_o some_o may_v and_o have_v fall_v away_o for_o that_o it_o be_v express_o say_v by_o christ_n some_o believe_v and_o afterward_o fall_v away_o and_o some_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o it_o and_o some_o who_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v fall_v away_o these_o and_o many_o such_o instance_n be_v in_o scripture_n nor_o do_v the_o scripture_n cite_v by_o thou_o prove_v the_o contrary_a as_o philip._n 1.6_o which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v no_o otherwise_o then_o as_o the_o condition_n be_v perform_v upon_o their_o part_n as_o hebr._n 3.14_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o hold_v fast_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o establishment_n or_o whereby_o we_o be_v establish_v firm_a unto_o the_o end_n and_o so_o these_o who_o hold_v fast_o this_o principle_n witness_v the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v begin_v in_o they_o to_o be_v carry_v on_o until_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n even_o till_o he_o be_v complete_o form_v in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o he_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o paul_n be_v as_o confident_a that_o god_n will_v perfect_v the_o work_n begin_v in_o himself_o and_o yet_o he_o suppose_v it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o where_o he_o say_v lest_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o other_o i_o myself_o become_v a_o castaway_n and_o though_o some_o fall_n away_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o foolish_a builder_n can_v be_v cast_v upon_o god_n but_o upon_o they_o who_o fall_v away_o for_o it_o stand_v very_o well_o with_o the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o suffer_v they_o to_o fall_v away_o who_o know_o and_o wilful_o depart_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o will_v not_o concur_v with_o he_o in_o the_o work_n as_o subordinate_a instrument_n but_o resist_v he_o though_o he_o invite_v and_o call_v yea_o draw_v they_o the_o next_o thou_o cite_v be_v 1_o pet._n 15._o answ._n such_o as_o be_v so_o keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v through_o faith_n but_o as_o they_o abide_v not_o in_o that_o power_n through_o faith_n but_o wander_v from_o it_o they_o fall_v and_o can_v but_o fall_v away_o and_o as_o for_o jerem._n 32.40_o cite_v by_o thou_o it_o shall_v be_v translate_v thus_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n into_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o so_o junius_n and_o tremellius_n version_n or_o not_o to_o depart_v from_o i_o as_o the_o septuagint_n have_v it_o now_o to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v be_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o say_v they_o can_v depart_v be_v another_o yet_o where_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n come_v so_o to_o be_v raise_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o heart_n over_o all_o we_o believe_v such_o can_v depart_v but_o every_o one_o be_v not_o attain_v to_o that_o state_n where_o yet_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n may_v have_v some_o place_n and_o as_o touch_v these_o other_o scripture_n john_n 10.27_o 28_o 29._o and_o john_n 13.1_o and_o 1_o john_n 2.19_o they_o speak_v of_o those_o who_o be_v come_v to_o a_o thorough-regeneration_n who_o we_o do_v believe_v can_v never_o fall_v away_o as_o be_v beget_v in_o the_o perfect_a nature_n of_o the_o elect_a sheep_n and_o child_n nor_o do_v it_o follow_v from_o this_o that_o one_o may_v be_v a_o child_n of_o god_n to_o day_n and_o a_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o morrow_n for_o these_o who_o be_v once_o proper_o the_o child_n of_o god_n through_o a_o true_a and_o thorough-regeneration_n can_v never_o become_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n nor_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o god_n special_a love_n that_o he_o bear_v to_o his_o own_o child_n for_o to_o end_v this_o matter_n thou_o say_v it_o be_v safe_a to_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o those_o that_o fall_v away_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o do_v thou_o look_v upon_o the_o quaker_n as_o have_v fall_v away_o if_o thou_o do_v how_o come_v it_o that_o thou_o bespeake_v they_o in_o thy_o epistle_n as_o those_o who_o have_v have_v real_a grace_n say_v to_o they_o do_v you_o attain_v to_o that_o knowledge_n of_o and_o acquaintance_n with_o god_n which_o you_o have_v in_o the_o use_n of_o ordinance_n and_o again_o you_o do_v run_v well_o who_o do_v hinder_v you_o and_o again_o why_o shall_v they_o asperse_v these_o ordinance_n which_o have_v be_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o conversion_n or_o be_v these_o word_n only_o a_o joab_n kiss_n by_o which_o thou_o will_v kiss_v the_o quaker_n while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n thou_o have_v a_o sword_n hide_v under_o thy_o cloak_n to_o strike_v they_o through_o under_o the_o five_o rib_n but_o the_o quaker_n be_v aware_a of_o thou_o and_o have_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o god_n be_v out_o of_o thy_o reach_n in_o the_o last_o place_n page_z 50._o thou_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o error_n as_o thou_o call_v they_o tend_v to_o irreligiousness_n and_o atheism_n because_o they_o tend_v to_o take_v away_o the_o worship_n due_a to_o god_n but_o it_o have_v be_v heretofore_o prove_v that_o we_o deny_v not_o true_a worship_n but_o only_o your_o idolatrous_a superstitious_a worship_n which_o can_v true_o be_v call_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n our_o way_n thou_o say_v tend_v to_o irreligiousness_n because_o frequent_o we_o go_v to_o meat_n meat_n prayer_n before_o meat_n and_o come_v from_o it_o without_o seek_v a_o blessing_n or_o return_v thanks_o
visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o god_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n 1.2_o hebr._n 1.2_o by_o who_o also_o he_o make_v the_o world_n q._n these_o be_v very_o clear_a that_o even_o the_o world_n be_v create_v by_o christ_n but_o what_o scripture_n prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n against_o such_o as_o false_o deny_v the_o same_o a._n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n 1._o john_n 1_o 1._o 9.5_o rom._n 9.5_o who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n 2.6_o phil_n 2.6_o and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n 5.20_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n q._n what_o be_v the_o glorious_a name_n the_o scripture_n give_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n a_o and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n 9.5_o isai._n 9.5_o the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n 1.15_o col._n 1.15_o who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n or_o more_o proper_o 〈◊〉_d hebr._n 1.3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o greek_a of_o his_o substance_n 19.13_o rev._n 19.13_o and_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o vesture_n dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n q._n after_o what_o manner_n be_v the_o birth_n of_o christ_n 1.18_o matth._n 1.18_o a._n now_o the_o birth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a when_o as_o his_o mother_n mary_n be_v espouse_v to_o joseph_n before_o they_o come_v together_o she_o be_v find_v with_o child_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o she_o fear_v not_o mary_n for_o thou_o have_v find_v favour_n with_o god_n and_o behold_v thou_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a christ._n the_o birth_n of_o christ._n and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n then_o say_v mary_n unto_o the_o angel_n how_o shall_v this_o be_v see_v i_o know_v not_o a_o man_n 35._o luke_n 1.30_o 31_o 32_o 34_o 35._o and_o the_o angel_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o she_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n that_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n q._n be_v jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o joseph_n a_o true_a and_o real_a man_n a._n forasmuch_o as_o the_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 2.14_o hebr._n 2.14_o he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n of_o the_o same_o that_o through_o death_n he_o may_v destroy_v he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n for_o very_o he_o take_v not_o on_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n 17._o hebr._n 2.16_o 17._o but_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n wherefore_o in_o all_o thing_n it_o behove_v he_o to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o merciful_a and_o faithful_a highpriest_n etc._n etc._n for_o we_o have_v not_o a_o highpriest_n 4.15_o hebr._n 4.15_o which_o can_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o our_o infirmity_n but_o be_v in_o all_o point_v tempt_v as_o we_o be_v yet_o without_o sin_n and_o the_o gift_n by_o grace_n which_o be_v by_o one_o man_n jesus_n christ_n 5.15_o hebr._n 5.15_o have_v abound_v unto_o many_o but_o now_o be_v christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a 21._o 1_o cor._n 15.20_o 21._o and_o become_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o they_o that_o sleep_v for_o since_o by_o man_n come_v death_n by_o man_n come_v also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a q._n after_o what_o manner_n do_v the_o scripture_n assert_v the_o conjunction_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n in_o and_o with_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n a._n and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n 1.14_o john_n 1.14_o and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n for_o he_o who_o god_n have_v send_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 3.34_o john_n 3.34_o for_o god_n give_v not_o the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n unto_o he_o now_o god_n anoint_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 38._o act_n 10_o 38._o and_o with_o power_n who_o go_v about_o do_v good_a and_o heal_v all_o that_o be_v oppress_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o god_n be_v with_o he_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 1.19_o col._n 1.19_o for_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 2.9_o col._n 2.9_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n 2.3_o col._n 2.3_o q._n for_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n a._n for_o what_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v 8.3_o rom._n 8.3_o in_o that_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n god_n send_v his_o son_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n and_o for_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh._n for_o this_o purpose_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v 9_o 1_o john_n 3.8_o 9_o that_o he_o may_v destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o you_o know_v that_o he_o be_v manifest_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n q._n be_v jesus_n christ_n real_o crucify_a and_o raise_v again_o a._n for_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o first_o of_o all_o that_o which_o i_o also_o receive_v 4._o 1_o cor._n 15.3_o 4._o how_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o he_o be_v bury_v and_o that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n q._n what_o end_v do_v the_o scripture_n ascribe_v unto_o the_o come_v death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ._n 32._o luke_n 2.30_o 31_o 32._o a._n for_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n which_o thou_o have_v prepare_v before_o the_o face_n of_o all_o people_n a_o light_a to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o people_n israel_n 3.25_o rom._n 3.25_o who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a through_o the_o forbearance_n of_o god_n and_o walk_v in_o love_n as_o christ_n also_o have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o we_o a_o offer_n 5.2_o ephes._n 5.2_o and_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sweet-smelling_a savour_n and_o have_v make_v peace_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n by_o he_o to_o reconcile_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o by_o he_o i_o say_v whether_o they_o be_v thing_n in_o earth_n or_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o you_o that_o be_v sometime_o alienate_v and_o enemy_n in_o your_o mind_n by_o wicked_a work_n yet_o now_o have_v he_o reconcile_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n through_o death_n 22._o col._n 1.20_o 21_o 22._o to_o present_v you_o holy_a vnblamable_a and_o vnreprovable_a in_o his_o sight_n 14._o hebr._n 9.12_o 14._o neither_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o goat_n and_o calf_n but_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n he_o entered-in_a once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n have_v obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n purge_v your_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_n god_n 3.18_o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o for_o christ_n also_o have_v once_o suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o god_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n 16._o 1_o john_n 3_o 16._o hereby_o perceive_v we_o
the_o love_n of_o god_n because_o he_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o we_o 9.15_o hebr._n 9.15_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o redemption_n of_o transgression_n that_o be_v under_o the_o first_o testament_n they_o which_o be_v call_v may_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o eternal_a inheritance_n q._n be_v christ_n then_o the_o mediator_n 2.5_o 1_o tim._n 2.5_o a_o for_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n who_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o to_o be_v testify_v in_o due_a time_n q._n be_v not_o christ_n the_o mediator_n until_o he_o appear_v and_o be_v crucify_a in_o the_o flesh_n 13.8_o rev._n 5.12_o and_o 13.8_o a_o he_o be_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n q._n be_v it_o then_o needful_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o old_a do_v partake_v of_o christ_n as_o then_o present_a with_o and_o nourish_v they_o 4._o 1_o cor._n 10.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o a._n moreover_o brethren_n i_o will_v not_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a how_o that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v under_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n and_o be_v all_o baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o do_v all_o drink_n the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v of_o that_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ._n q._n but_o whereas_o most_o of_o these_o scripture_n beforementioned_a do_v hold_v forth_o that_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o destroy_n remove_v and_o remit_v of_o sin_n do_v he_o so_o do_v it_o while_o he_o be_v outward_o upon_o earth_n as_o not_o to_o leave_v any_o thing_n for_o himself_o to_o do_v in_o we_o nor_o for_o we_o to_o do_v in_o and_o by_o his_o strength_n a._n for_o even_o hereunto_o be_v you_o call_v 2.21_o 1_o pet._n 2.21_o because_o christ_n also_o suffer_v for_o we_o leave_v we_o a_o example_n that_o you_o shall_v follow_v his_o step_n whereof_o i_o paul_n be_o make_v a_o minister_n 24._o col._n 1.23_o 24._o who_o now_o rejoice_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o fill_v up_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n sake_n which_o be_v the_o church_n always_o bear_v about_o in_o the_o body_n the_o die_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 11._o 2_o cor._n 4.10_o 11._o that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o body_n for_o we_o which_o live_v be_v always_o deliver_v unto_o death_n for_o jesus_n be_v sake_n that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o mortal_a flesh._n and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v 5.15_o 2_o cor._n 5.15_o shall_v not_o henceforth_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o that_o die_v for_o they_o and_o also_o rise_v again_o that_o i_o may_v know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 3.10_o phil._n 3.10_o and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n be_v make_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o new_a birth_n the_o inward_a appearance_n of_o christ_n in_o spirit_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o he_o question_n do_v christ_n promise_v then_o to_o come_v again_o to_o his_o disciple_n answer_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o i_o come_v unto_o you_o 14.18_o john_n 14.18_o q._n be_v this_o only_a a_o special_a promise_n to_o these_o disciple_n or_o be_v it_o not_o the_o common_a privilege_n of_o the_o saint_n a._n for_o thus_o say_v the_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o that_o inhabit_v eternity_n who_o name_n be_v holy_a i_o dwell_v in_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a place_n 57.15_o isa._n 57.15_o with_o he_o also_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n for_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o god_n have_v say_v 6.16_o 2_o cor._n 6.16_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o behold_v i_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_v if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o voice_n 3.20_o rev._n 3.20_o and_o open_v the_o door_n i_o will_v come_v in_o to_o he_o and_o sup_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o i_o q_o do_v the_o apostle_n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v in_o he_o a._n but_o when_o it_o please_v god_n 16._o gal._n 1.15_o 16._o who_o separate_v i_o from_o my_o mother_n womb_n and_o call_v i_o by_o his_o grace_n to_o reveal_v his_o son_n in_o i_o that_o i_o may_v preach_v he_o among_o the_o heathen_a q._n be_v it_o needful_a then_o to_o know_v christ_n within_o a._n examine_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n 13.5_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o prove_v your_o own_o self_n know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n q._n be_v the_o apostle_n earnest_n that_o this_o inward_a birth_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o in_o any_o a._n 41.9_o a._n gal._n 41.9_o my_o little_a child_n of_o who_o i_o travel_v in_o birth_n again_o until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o you_o q_o what_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o inward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o new_a creature_n beyond_o the_o outward_a a._n wherefore_o henceforth_o know_v we_o no_o man_n after_o the_o flesh_n yea_o though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n yet_o now_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o no_o more_o 17_o 2_o cor._n 5.16_o 17_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a but_o you_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o 24._o ephes._n 4.21_o 22_o 23_o 24._o and_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o he_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n that_o you_o put_v off_o concern_v the_o former_a conversation_n the_o old_a man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a according_a to_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n and_o to_o be_v renew_a in_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o that_o you_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n q._n be_v this_o christ-within_a the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o hope_v of_o glory_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v 28._o col._n 1.27_o 28._o a._n to_o who_o god_n will_v make_v know_v what_o be_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o mystery_n among_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n who_o you_o preach_v q._n do_v the_o apostle_n any_o where_o else_o press_v the_o put_v on_o of_o this_o new_a birth_n a._n put_v you_o on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o make_v not_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n thereof_o 13.14_o rom._n 13.14_o q._n do_v he_o write_v to_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n as_o have_v put_v off_o the_o old_a and_o on_o the_o new_a man_n a._n for_o as_o many_o of_o you_o as_o have_v be_v baptise_a into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ._n 27._o gal._n 3_o 27._o see_v that_o you_o have_v put_v off_o the_o old_a man_n with_o his_o deed_n and_o have_v put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n 10._o col._n 3.9_o 10._o which_o be_v renew_v in_o knowledge_n after_o the_o image_n of_o he_o that_o create_v he_o q._n what_o speak_v christ_n himself_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o new_a birth_n 3.3_o john_n 3.3_o a._n jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n q_o of_o what_o seed_n come_v this_o birth_n 1.23_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o a._n be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o q._n what_o do_v the_o apostle_n paul_n witness_n of_o himself_o concern_v this_o new_a life_n a._n i_o be_o crucify_a with_o christ_n nevertheless_o i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o 2.20_o gal._n 2.20_o q._n what_o be_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n 1.18_o 1_o cor._n 1.18_o a._n for_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v foolishness_n but_o unto_o we_o that_o be_v save_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n q._n what_o effect_n have_v this_o cross_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o how_o much_o prefer_v he_o the_o new_a creature_n to_o all_o outward_a and_o visible_a ordinance_n
and_o observance_n a._n 15._o a._n gal._n 6.14_o 15._o but_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_a unto_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n for_o in_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n q._n what_o speak_v christ_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o he_o a._n at_o that_o day_n you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n 14.20_o john_n 14.20_o and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o 5._o john_n 15.4_o 5._o as_o the_o branch_n can_v bear_v fruit_n of_o itself_o except_o it_o abide_v in_o the_o vine_n no_o more_o can_v you_o except_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n you_o be_v the_o branch_n he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o the_o same_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n for_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o neither_o pray_v i_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o 23._o john_n 17.20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v it_o that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o i_o in_o they_o and_o thou_o in_o i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o and_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o have_v love_v they_o as_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o q._n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o this_o purpose_n a._n for_o both_o he_o that_o sanctify_v and_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v 2.11_o hebr._n 2.11_o be_v all_o of_o one_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v they_o brethren_n q._n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n a._n whereby_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o exceed_v great_a and_o precious_a promise_n 1.4_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o that_o by_o these_o you_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n have_v escape_v the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n through_o lust._n chap._n v._o concern_v the_o light_n wherewith_o jesus_n christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n the_o universality_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o all_o the_o world_n make_v manifest_a therein_o question_n wherein_o consist_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o fallen_n and_o lose_v man_n answer_n for_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n 3.16_o john_n 3.16_o that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o because_o that_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n 4.9_o 1_o john_n 4.9_o that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o q._n what_o be_v intend_v here_o by_o the_o world_n all_o and_o every_o man_n or_o only_o a_o few_o a._n but_o we_o see_v jesus_n who_o be_v make_v a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n for_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n 2.9_o hebr._n 2.9_o that_o he_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man._n 2._o 1_o john_n 2.1_o 2._o and_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n q._n methinks_v the_o apostle_n john_n be_v very_o plain_a there_o in_o mention_v the_o whole_a world_n which_o must_v be_v not_o only_o the_o saint_n but_o all_o other_o seeing_z he_o distinguish_v the_o world_n from_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o saint_n to_o who_o he_o then_o write_v what_o say_v paul_n elsewhere_o in_o this_o matter_n a._n christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n who_o we_o preach_v warn_v every_o man_n 28._o col._n 1.27_o 28._o and_o teach_v every_o man_n in_o all_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n 6._o 1_o tim._n 2.3_o 4_o 6._o i_o exhort_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n who_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o to_o be_v testify_v in_o due_a time_n q._n what_o be_v the_o apostle_n peter_n be_v testimony_n in_o this_o a._n the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o be_v long-suffering_a to_o us-ward_n 3.9_o 2_o pet._n 3.9_o not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n q._n be_v there_o any_o more_o scripture-passage_n that_o prove_v this_o thing_n a._n say_v unto_o they_o as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a 33.11_o ezek._n 33.11_o but_o that_o the_o wicked_a turn_n from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a and_o full_a of_o compassion_n slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a mercy_n 9_o psal._n 145.8_o 9_o the_o lord_n be_v good_a to_o all_o and_o his_o tender_a mercy_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n unto_o himself_o 5.19_o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o q._n see_v then_o by_o these_o scripture_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v hold_v out_o to_o all_o that_o all_o may_v have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o those_o who_o assert_v that_o god_n nor_o christ_n never_o purpose_v love_n nor_o salvation_n to_o a_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o the_o come_v and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n never_o be_v intend_v nor_o can_v be_v useful_a to_o their_o justification_n but_o will_v and_o must_v be_v effectual_a for_o their_o condemnation_n even_o according_a to_o god_n purpose_n who_o from_o their_o very_a infancy_n to_o their_o grave_n withhold_v from_o they_o all_o mean_n of_o salvation_n what_o say_v the_o scripture_n to_o such_o a._n for_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n through_o he_o may_v be_v save_v 17._o john_n 3_o 17._o i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o i_o 47._o john_n 12.46_o 47._o shall_v not_o abide_v in_o darkness_n and_o if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v not_o i_o judge_v he_o not_o for_o i_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o to_o save_v the_o world_n q._n from_o what_o scripture_n then_o come_v these_o man_n to_o wrest_v a_o opinion_n so_o contrary_a to_o truth_n a._n for_o the_o child_n be_v not_o yet_o bear_v neither_o have_v do_v any_o good_a or_o evil_a 13._o rom._n 9_o 11_o 12_o 13._o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o election_n may_v stand_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o she_o the_o elder_n shall_v serve_v the_o young_a as_o it_o be_v write_v jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v q._n i_o perceive_v in_o that_o scripture_n it_o be_v only_o say_v before_o the_o child_n be_v bear_v the_o elder_n shall_v serve_v the_o young_a these_o other_o word_n jacob_n have_v i_o love_v esau_n have_v i_o hate_v be_v mention_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n who_o write_v they_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o both_o be_v dead_a do_v not_o the_o scripture_n mention_v any_o other_o cause_n of_o god_n hate_v esau_n than_o mere_o his_o decree_n what_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n elsewhere_o a._n lest_o there_o be_v any_o fornication_n or_o profane_a person_n as_o esau_n 17._o hebr._n 12.16_o 17._o who_o for_o one_o morsel_n of_o meat_n sell_v his_o birthright_n for_o you_o know_v how_o that_o afterward_o when_o he_o will_v have_v inherit_v the_o blessing_n he_o be_v reject_v q._n but_o see_v that_o such_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v because_o of_o adam_n be_v sin_n that_o many_o even_a child_n be_v damn_v do_v not_o the_o scripture_n aver_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o large_a to_o heal_n as_o adam_n be_v sin_n can_v condemn_v a._n for_o if_o through_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o many_o be_v dead_a 18._o rom._n 5.15_o 18._o much_o more_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n
have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v if_o they_o shall_v fall_v away_o to_o renew_v they_o again_o unto_o repentance_n see_v they_o crucify_v to_o themselves_o the_o son_n of_o god_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n look_v diligent_o lest_o any_o man_n fail_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 12.15_o hebr._n 12.15_o lest_o any_o root_n of_o bitterness_n spring_v up_o trouble_v you_o and_o thereby_o many_o be_v defile_v q_o do_v he_o speak_v this_o only_a by_o supposition_n or_o do_v he_o assert_v it_o not_o only_o possible_a but_o certain_a a._n for_o the_o time_n will_v come_v 4._o 2_o tim._n 4_o 3_o 4._o when_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v sound_a doctrine_n but_o after_o their_o own_o lust_n shall_v they_o heap_v to_o themselves_o teacher_n have_v itch_a ear_n and_o they_o shall_v turn_v away_o their_o ear_n from_o the_o truth_n and_o shall_v be_v turn_v unto_o fable_n q._n do_v the_o apostle_n even_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o guard_v such_o a_o one_o as_o his_o belove_a son_n timothy_n against_o this_o hazzard_n a._n this_o charge_n i_o commit_v unto_o thou_o son_n timothy_n 19_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o 19_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n which_o go_v before_o on_o thou_o that_o thou_o by_o they_o may_v war_v the_o good_a warfare_n hold_v faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o some_o have_v put_v away_o concern_v faith_n have_v make_v shipwreck_n for_o the_o love_n of_o money_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a 4.10_o 2_o tim._n 4.10_o which_o while_o some_o covet_v after_o they_o have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o pierce_v themselves_o through_o with_o many_o sorrow_n 18._o 2_o tim._n 17.17_o 18._o and_o their_o word_n will_v eat_v as_o do_v a_o canker_n of_o who_o be_v hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n who_o concern_v the_o true_a faith_n have_v err_v say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o and_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o q._n do_v the_o apostle_n any_o where_n express_v his_o fear_n of_o this_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o number_n of_o people_n who_o once_o true_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n a._n well_o because_o of_o unbelief_n they_o be_v break_v off_o 11.20_o rom._n 11.20_o and_o thou_o stand_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o highminded_a but_o fear_v now_o the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o 4.1_o 1_o tim._n 4.1_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n 3.5_o 1_o thess._n 3.5_o when_o i_o can_v no_o long_o forbear_v i_o send_v to_o know_v your_o faith_n lest_o by_o some_o mean_v the_o tempter_n have_v tempt_v you_o and_o our_o labour_n be_v in_o vain_a q._n what_o be_v the_o apostle_n peter_n mind_n do_v he_o judge_v that_o such_o as_o have_v know_v the_o right_a way_n may_v forsake_v it_o a._n 22._o a._n 2_o pet._n 2.14_o 15_o 18_o 20_o 21_o 22._o curse_a child_n which_o have_v forsake_v the_o righteous_a way_n and_o be_v go_v astray_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n the_o son_n of_o bezor_n who_o love_v the_o way_n of_o unrighteousness_n but_o be_v rebuke_v for_o his_o iniquity_n the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n forbid_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o prophet_n these_o be_v well_n without_o water_n cloud_n that_o be_v carry_v with_o a_o tempest_n to_o who_o the_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o ever_o for_o when_o they_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n they_o allure_v through_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o much_o wantonness_n those_o that_o be_v clean_o escape_v from_o they_o who_o live_v in_o error_n for_o if_o after_o they_o have_v escape_v the_o pollution_n of_o the_o world_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v again_o entangle_v therein_o and_o overcome_v the_o latter_a end_n be_v worse_a with_o they_o than_o the_o beginning_n for_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o not_o to_o have_v know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n than_o after_o they_o have_v know_v it_o to_o turn_v from_o the_o holy_a commandment_n deliver_v unto_o they_o but_o it_o be_v happen_v to_o they_o according_a to_o the_o true_a proverb_n the_o dog_n be_v turn_v to_o his_o vomit_n and_o the_o sow_n that_o be_v wash_v to_o her_o wallow_n in_o the_o mire_n q._n give_v he_o any_o caution_n to_o they_o that_o stand_v as_o suppose_v they_o may_v also_o fall_v 3.17_o 2_o pet._n 3.17_o a._n you_o therefore_o beloved_n see_v you_o know_v these_o thing_n before_o beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a fall_v from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n q._n may_v a_o man_n be_v true_o a_o branch_n in_o christ_n or_o a_o real_a member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o afterward_o be_v cut_v off_o 15.6_o john_n 15.6_o a._n if_o any_o man_n abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o be_v cast_v forth_o as_o a_o branch_n and_o be_v wither_a q_o may_v a_o righteous_a man_n then_o depart_v from_o his_o righteousness_n 33.13_o ez●k_n 18.26_o and_o 33.13_o a._n but_o when_o the_o righteous_a man_n turn_v away_o from_o his_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n and_o die_v in_o they_o for_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o have_v do_v shall_v he_o die_v q._n may_v a_o believer_n come_v to_o such_o a_o condition_n in_o this_o life_n from_o which_o he_o can_v fall_v away_o 3.12_o rev._n 3.12_o a._n him_n that_o overcome_v will_v i_o make_v a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o out_o and_o i_o will_v write_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o my_o god_n which_o be_v new_a jerusalem_n who_o come_v down_o out_o of_o heaven_n from_o my_o god_n and_o will_v write_v upon_o he_o my_o new_a name_n q._n may_v such_o a_o one_o come_v to_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n 39_o rom._n 8.38_o 39_o a._n for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n chap._n ix_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o ministry_n question_n what_o be_v the_o church_n answer_n but_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o 15._o 1_o tim._n 3_o 15._o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n q._n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n a._n who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n 2.19_o col._n 113._o and_o 2.19_o and_o have_v translate_v we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n and_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n from_o which_o all_o the_o body_n by_o joint_n and_o band_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v and_o knit_v together_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n q._n what_o kind_n of_o person_n make_v the_o church_n a._n they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 2.47_o 1_o cor._n 1.2_o act_n 2.47_o and_o the_o lord_n add_v to_o the_o church_n daily_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v q._n have_v not_o christ_n appoint_v any_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n a._n wherefore_o he_o say_v when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a 11.12_o ephes._n 4.8_o 11.12_o he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o some_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n q._n what_o kind_n of_o man_n shall_v such_o as_o be_v teacher_n and_o overseer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a._n a_o bishop_n then_o must_v be_v blameless_a the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n 7._o 1_o tim._n 3.2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o vigilant_a sober_a of_o good_a behaviour_n give_v to_o hospitality_n apt_a to_o teach_v not_o give_v to_o wine_n no_o striker_n not_o greedy_a of_o filthy_a lucre_n but_o patient_n not_o a_o brawler_n not_o covetous_a one_o that_o rule_v well_o his_o own_o house_n have_v his_o child_n in_o subjection_n with_o all_o gravity_n for_o if_o a_o man_n know_v not_o how_o to_o rule_v his_o own_o house_n how_o shall_v he_o take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o a_o novice_n lest_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o
be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n 17._o work_n 2_o tim._n 3.15_o 16_o 17._o no_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n for_o the_o prophecy_n come_v not_o in_o old_a time_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 21._o ghost_n 2_o pet._n 1.20_o 21._o article_n iv_o concern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v 3._o make_v john_n 1.1_o 2_o 3._o who_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o of_o old_a from_o everlasting_a 5.2_o everlasting_a mich._n 5.2_o for_o god_n create_v all_o by_o jesus_n christ_n 3.9_o christ_n eph_n 3.9_o who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n 2.6_o god_n phil._n 2.6_o and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n 9.6_o peace_n isa._n 9.6_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n 1.15_o creature_n col._n 1.15_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o father_n glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o substance_n 1.3_o substance_n hebr._n 1.3_o who_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o vesture_n dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 19.13_o god_n rev._n 19.13_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 2.9_o bodily_a col._n 2.9_o and_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n 2.3_o knowledge_n col._n 2.3_o article_n v._o concern_v his_o appearance_n in_o the_o flesh._n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n 14._o flesh_n john_n 14._o for_o he_o take_v not_o on_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n make_v like_a unto_o his_o brethren_n 17._o brethren_n hebr._n 2.16_o 17._o touch_v with_o a_o feel_n of_o our_o infirmity_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n tempt_v like_a as_o we_o be_v yet_o without_o sin_n 4.15_o sin_n hebr._n 4.15_o he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o he_o be_v bury_v and_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n 4._o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 15.3_o 4._o article_n vi_o concern_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o that_o appearance_n god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n and_o for_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n 8.3_o flesh_n rom._n 8.3_o for_o this_o purpose_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v that_o he_o may_v destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 3_o devil_n 1_o john_n 3_o be_v manifest_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n 3.5_o sin_n 1_o john_n 3.5_o for_o he_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o a_o offer_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sweet-smelling_a savour_n 5.2_o savour_n eph._n 5.2_o have_v obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o 9.12_o we_o hebr._n 9.12_o and_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v up_o himself_o without_o spot_n unto_o god_n to_o purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n 9.14_o god_n hebr._n 9.14_o he_o be_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n 13._o world_n rev._n 5.1_o 12_o 13._o of_o who_o the_o father_n do_v all_o drink_n of_o that_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n 4._o christ_n 1_o cor._n 10.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o christ_n also_o suffer_v for_o we_o leave_v we_o a_o example_n that_o we_o shall_v follow_v his_o step_n 2.21_o step_n 1_o pet._n 2.21_o for_o we_o be_v to_o bear_v about_o in_o the_o body_n the_o die_a of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o body_n be_v always_o deliver_v unto_o death_n for_o jesus_n sake_n that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o flesh_n 11._o flesh_n 2_o cor._n 4.10_o 11._o that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n be_v make_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n 3.10_o death_n phil._n 3.10_o article_n vii_o concern_v the_o inward_a manifestation_n of_o christ._n god_n dwell_v with_o the_o contrite_a and_o humble_a in_o spirit_n 57.15_o spirit_n isa._n 57.15_o for_o he_o say_v he_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o 6.16_o they_o 2_o cor._n 6.16_o and_o christ_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_v if_o any_o man_n hear_v his_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n he_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o sup_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o he_o 3.20_o he_o rev._n 3.20_o and_o therefore_o ought_v we_o to_o examine_v our_o own_o self_n and_o prove_v our_o own_o self_n know_v how_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o except_o we_o be_v reprobate_n 13.5_o reprobate_n 2_o col._n 13.5_o for_o this_o be_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o god_n will_v make_v know_v among_o or_o rather_o in_o the_o gentile_n christ_n within_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n 1.27_o glory_n col._n 1.27_o article_n viii_o concern_v the_o new_a birth_n except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 3.3_o god_n john_n 3.3_o therefore_o ought_v we_o to_o put_v off_o the_o old_a man_n with_o his_o deed_n and_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o be_v renew_v in_o knowledge_n after_o the_o image_n of_o he_o that_o create_v he_o and_o which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n 3.10_o holiness_n ephes._n 9.21_o 22._o col._n 3.10_o for_o henceforth_o know_v we_o no_o man_n after_o the_o flesh_n yea_o though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n yet_o now_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o no_o more_o 5.16_o more_o 2_o cor._n 5.16_o for_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a 17._o new_a 2_o cor._n 5_o 17._o for_o such_o have_v put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 13.14_o christ_n rom._n 13.14_o and_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o their_o mind_n 4.28_o mind_n ephes._n 4.28_o sith_o as_o many_o as_o have_v be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n 27._o christ_n gal_n 3_o 27._o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o 1.23_o ever_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o and_o glory_n in_o nothing_o save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_v unto_o they_o and_o they_o unto_o the_o world_n 6.14_o world_n gal._n 6.14_o for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n 6.5_o creature_n gal._n 6.5_o article_n ix_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o christ._n he_o that_o sanctifi_v and_o they_o who_o be_v sanctify_v be_v all_o of_o one_o 2.11_o one_o hebr._n 2.11_o for_o by_o the_o exceed_a great_a and_o precious_a promise_n that_o be_v give_v they_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 1.4_o nature_n 2_o pet._n 1.4_o because_o for_o this_o end_n pray_v christ_n that_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o the_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o the_o father_n that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o they_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v get_v from_o the_o father_n he_o give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o the_o father_n and_o he_o be_v one_o christ_n in_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o father_n in_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o 23._o one_o john_n 17.21_o 22_o 23._o article_n x._o concern_v the_o universal_a love_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o all_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n 3.16_o life_n john_n 3.16_o and_o in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o because_o that_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o 4.9_o he_o 1_o john_n 4.9_o so_o that_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o
carnal_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n to_o the_o pull_v down_o of_o strong_a hold_n cast_v down_o imagination_n and_o every_o high_a thing_n that_o exalt_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_n into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n 5._o christ_n 2_o cor._n 10_o 3.4_o 5._o for_o war_n and_o fight_n come_v of_o the_o lust_n that_o war_n in_o the_o member_n 2._o member_n jam._n 4.1_o 2._o therefore_o christ_n command_v not_o to_o resist_v evil_a but_o whosoever_o will_v smite_v on_o the_o right_a cheek_n to_o turn_v the_o other_o also_o 5.39_o also_o mat._n 5.39_o because_o christian_n be_v lamb_n among_o wolf_n 10.3_o wolf_n luke_n 10.3_o therefore_o be_v they_o hate_v of_o all_o man_n for_o christ_n sake_n 10.22_o sake_n mat._n 10.22_o and_o all_o that_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n must_v suffer_v persecution_n 3.12_o persecution_n 2_o tim._n 3.12_o such_o be_v bless_v for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 10._o heaven_n mat._n 5_o 10._o for_o though_o they_o have_v lose_v their_o life_n yet_o shall_v they_o save_v they_o 16.25_o they_o mat._n 16.25_o and_o because_o they_o have_v confess_v christ_n before_o man_n he_o will_v also_o confess_v they_o before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n 9_o god_n luke_n 12.8_o 9_o we_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o fear_v they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n but_o rather_o he_o which_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o hell_n 10.28_o hell_n mat._n 10.28_o article_n xxii_o concern_v magistracy_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n whosoever_o therefore_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n for_o ruler_n be_v not_o a_o terror_n to_o good_a work_n but_o to_o the_o evil_a will_v thou_o then_o not_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o power_n do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v praise_n of_o the_o same_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o for_o good_a but_o if_o thou_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a be_v afraid_a for_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n a_o revenger_n to_o execute_v wrath_n upon_o he_o that_o do_v evil._n wherefore_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_n not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n pay_v we_o also_o tribute_n for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n attend_v continual_o upon_o this_o very_a thing_n render_v therefore_o to_o all_o their_o due_n tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n be_v due_a custom_n to_o who_o custom_n fear_v to_o who_o fear_n honour_n to_o who_o honour_n 7._o honour_n rom._n 13.1_o 2_o 7._o therefore_o be_v we_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v by_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil-doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o with_o well-doing_n we_o may_v put_v to_o silence_n the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n 15._o man_n 1_o pet._n 2.13_o 14_o 15._o yet_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o hearken_v unto_o he_o more_o than_o unto_o they_o 4.19_o they_o act_n 4.19_o and_o though_o they_o straight_o command_v we_o not_o to_o teach_v in_o christ_n name_n we_o ought_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n 29._o man_n act_n 5.28_o 29._o article_n xxiii_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a both_o of_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a 24.15_o unjust_a act_n 24.15_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n 5.29_o damnation_n john_n 5.29_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v corruption_n inherit_v incorruption_n 15.50_o incorruption_n 1_o cor._n 15.50_o nor_o be_v that_o body_n sow_o that_o shall_v be_v but_o god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n as_o it_o have_v please_v he_o and_o to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o corruption_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o incorruption_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o dishonour_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o glory_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o power_n it_o be_v sow_o a_o natural_a body_n it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n 44._o body_n 1_o cor._n 15.37_o 38_o 42_o 43_o 44._o chap._n xvii_o a_o short_a expostulation_n with_o and_o appeal_v to_o all_o other_o professor_n come_v let_v we_o reason_n with_o you_o all_o you_o professor_n of_o christianity_n of_o what_o sort_n or_o kind_n soever_o and_o bring_v forth_o your_o catechism_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n to_o that_o which_o by_o most_o of_o yourselves_o be_v account_v the_o touchstone_n or_o rule_n and_o suffer_v yourselves_o no_o more_o to_o be_v blind_v and_o to_o err_v through_o your_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o free_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v to_o that_o glorious_a gospel_n and_o light_n which_o the_o scripture_n so_o clear_o witness_v to_o and_o your_o experience_n must_v needs_o answer_v as_o also_o to_o these_o other_o doctrine_n unto_o the_o noble_a principle_n of_o truth_n all_o be_v invite_v unto_o which_o consequential_o depend_v upon_o the_o behalf_n of_o that_o noble_a and_o true_o catholic_n principle_n wherein_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v so_o merciful_o exhibit_v to_o all_o man_n and_o his_o justice_n and_o mercy_n do_v like_o twin_n so_o harmonious_o concord_n his_o mercy_n in_o the_o oft_o tender_v of_o his_o love_n through_o the_o strive_n and_o wrestle_n of_o his_o light_n during_o the_o day_n of_o every_o man_n visitation_n and_o his_o justice_n both_o in_o the_o destroy_n and_o cut_v away_o of_o the_o wicked_a nature_n and_o spirit_n in_o those_o that_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v redeem_a through_o his_o judgement_n and_o in_o the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o such_o who_o rebel_a against_o the_o light_n and_o do_v despite_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n hate_v to_o be_v reform_v now_o not_o only_o this_o fundamental_a principle_n be_v clear_o hold_v forth_o in_o this_o treatise_n but_o all_o these_o that_o depend_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o real_a and_o inward_a justification_n of_o the_o saint_n through_o the_o power_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n reveal_v in_o they_o their_o full_a and_o perfect_a redemption_n from_o the_o body_n of_o death_n and_o sin_n as_o they_o grow_v up_o by_o the_o working_n and_o prevalency_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o yet_o lest_o security_n shall_v enter_v there_o be_v great_a need_n of_o watchfulness_n in_o that_o they_o may_v even_o depart_v after_o they_o have_v real_o witness_v a_o good_a condition_n and_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o lie_v link_v together_o like_o a_o golden_a chain_n which_o do_v very_o much_o evidence_n the_o certainty_n and_o virtue_n of_o truth_n above_o all_o heresy_n error_n and_o deceit_n however_o so_o cunning_o gild_v with_o the_o specious_a pretence_n thereof_o for_o truth_n be_v entire_a in_o all_o its_o part_n and_o consonant_a to_o itself_o without_o the_o least_o jar_n have_v a_o wonderful_a coherence_n and_o notable_a harmony_n instrument_n the_o harmony_n of_o truth_n as_o of_o a_o well-tuned_a instrument_n answer_v together_o like_o the_o string_n of_o a_o well-tuned_a instrument_n whereas_o the_o principle_n of_o all_o other_o professor_n though_o in_o some_o thing_n most_o of_o they_o come_v near_o and_o divers_a acknowledge_v that_o which_o be_v truth_n yet_o in_o most_o thing_n they_o stray_v from_o it_o so_o that_o their_o principle_n great_o contradict_v and_o jar_v one_o against_o another_o and_o though_o they_o may_v allege_v scripture_n for_o some_o of_o their_o principle_n yet_o they_o be_v put_v strange_o to_o wrest_v it_o and_o to_o deny_v it_o for_o other_o my_o appeal_n then_o to_o and_o expostulation_n with_o all_o sort_n of_o professor_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v some_o one_o or_o two_o point_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v some_o general_a notion_n of_o truth_n which_o most_o if_o not_o all_o agree_v to_o but_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o our_o principle_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o relation_n to_o each_o other_o which_o none_o of_o they_o all_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o among_o the_o many_o professor_n their_o catechism_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n i_o
in_o the_o case_n of_o division_n or_o debate_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o basis_n upon_o which_o they_o proceed_v and_o the_o stress_n they_o lie_v upon_o it_o first_o all_o joint_o both_o the_o prelatical_a and_o presbyterial_a will_v have_v this_o synod_n or_o council_n to_o consist_v of_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o clergy_n protestant_n 1._o protestant_n choose_v and_o send_v from_o the_o particular_a congregation_n with_o some_o few_o laic_a elder_n call_v together_o by_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o case_n he_o be_v one_o in_o judgement_n with_o they_o they_o decide_v by_o plurality_n of_o vote_n and_o though_o they_o assume_v not_o a_o absolute_a infallibility_n in_o that_o they_o reckon_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o err_v yet_o do_v they_o reckon_v their_o decision_n obligatory_a upon_o their_o suppose_a consonancy_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o however_o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o constrain_v all_o to_o submit_v and_o obey_v or_o else_o to_o punish_v they_o either_o by_o death_n banishment_n imprisonment_n confiscation_n of_o good_n or_o some_o other_o corporal_a pain_n even_o though_o such_o be_v persuade_v and_o offer_v to_o make_v appear_v that_o the_o decision_n they_o refuse_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o last_o among_o the_o papist_n none_n papist_n 2._o papist_n though_o otherwise_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n both_o know_v and_o sober_a except_o commissionate_a in_o some_o of_o the_o respect_n above-declared_n can_v be_v admit_v to_o sit_v vote_n and_o give_v his_o judgement_n any_o that_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o foundation_n i_o before_o lay_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n in_o that_o we_o may_v account_v only_o to_o be_v true_o call_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n both_o 3._o we_o differ_v from_o they_o both_o will_v easy_o fee_v the_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o we_o which_o i_o shall_v sum_v up_o in_o these_o particular_n first_o do_v we_o exclude_v any_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o may_v be_v true_o account_v so_o to_o tell_v his_o judgement_n second_o do_v we_o say_v man_n ought_v to_o be_v persecute_v in_o his_o outward_o for_o his_o disassent_a in_o spiritual_n three_o do_v we_o plead_v that_o decision_n be_v to_o pass_v conclusive_a because_o of_o the_o plurality_n of_o vote_n and_o much_o more_o which_o the_o reader_n may_v observe_v from_o what_o be_v already_o mention_v which_o that_o it_o may_v be_v all_o more_o obvious_a at_o one_o view_v will_v appear_v somewhat_o clear_o by_o this_o follow_a figure_n which_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n a_o opportunity_n to_o recollect_v what_o lie_v heretofore_o more_o scatter_v i._o the_o romanist_n say_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n which_o infallibility_n be_v when_o the_o pope_n call_v a_o general_n council_n of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n that_o whatsoever_o they_o conclude_v and_o agree_v upon_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v never_o suffer_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n to_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n make_v up_o of_o certain_a of_o the_o clergy_n have_v one_o outward_a succession_n and_o be_v lawful_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n be_v that_o church_n to_o which_o that_o promise_n be_v make_v however_o wicked_a or_o deprave_v without_o any_o necessary_a respect_n to_o the_o inward_a holiness_n or_o regeneration_n of_o the_o person_n if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v outward_o call_v ordain_v and_o invest_v in_o such_o a_o place_n and_o capacity_n as_o give_v they_o a_o authority_n to_o be_v member_n of_o such_o a_o assembly_n 3._o what_o they_o thus_o decide_v as_o they_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o reverence_n and_o submit_v to_o and_o those_o that_o do_v not_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n by_o death_n banishment_n or_o imprisonment_n though_o they_o declare_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o evidence_n that_o it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n they_o refuse_v such_o decree_n ii_o the_o generality_n of_o protestant_n say_v 1._o that_o though_o all_o synod_n and_o council_n may_v err_v yet_o such_o assembly_n be_v needful_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o such_o do_v consist_v of_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o clergy_n chap._n west_n conf._n of_o faith_n chap._n with_o some_o few_o laic_n particular_o choose_v that_o all_o other_o except_o those_o so_o elect_v have_v not_o any_o right_n to_o vote_n or_o give_v judgement_n 2._o that_o such_o a_o assembly_n so_o constitute_v may_v ministerial_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n case_n of_o conscience_n matter_n of_o worship_n and_o authoritative_o determine_v the_o same_o the_o decision_n be_v to_o be_v by_o plurality_n of_o vote_n prave_v they_o be_v yet_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n follow_v they_o as_o be_v necessary_o annex_v to_o their_o office_n in_o which_o the_o authority_n still_o stand_v in_o its_o full_a strength_n and_o vigour_n 3._o so_o that_o there_o lie_v a_o obligation_n upon_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o obey_v their_o decree_n and_o such_o as_o do_v not_o be_v not_o only_o certain_o damn_v for_o their_o disobedience_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o punish_v such_o by_o death_n banishment_n or_o imprisonment_n etc._n etc._n in_o case_n they_o refuse_v iii_o the_o quaker_n say_v member_n the_o sanctify_a member_n 1._o that_o whereas_o none_o true_o aught_o nor_o can_v be_v account_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o a_o measure_n sanctify_a or_o sanctify_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o lead_v by_o his_o spirit_n nor_o yet_o any_o make_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o inward_a revelation_n of_o his_o spirit_n not_o by_o outward_a ordination_n or_o succession_n from_o which_o none_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v if_o so_o call_v whether_o marry_v or_o a_o tradesman_n or_o a_o servant_n 2._o if_o so_o be_v in_o such_o a_o church_n there_o shall_v arise_v any_o difference_n there_o will_v be_v a_o infallible_a judgement_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n judgement_n their_o infallible_a judgement_n which_o may_v be_v in_o a_o general_n assembly_n yet_o not_o limit_v to_o it_o as_o exclude_v other_o and_o may_v prove_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o plurality_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v decide_v thereby_o as_o if_o the_o infallibility_n be_v place_v there_o exclude_v the_o few_o in_o which_o meeting_n or_o assembly_n upon_o such_o a_o account_n there_o be_v no_o limitation_n to_o be_v of_o person_n particular_o choose_v but_o that_o all_o that_o in_o a_o true_a sense_n may_v be_v reckon_v of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v sober_a and_o weighty_a may_v be_v present_a and_o give_v their_o judgement_n unto_o to_o be_v submit_v unto_o 3._o and_o that_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o truth_n which_o can_v be_v want_v in_o such_o a_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v give_v through_o one_o or_o more_o aught_o to_o be_v submit_v to_o not_o because_o such_o person_n give_v it_o but_o because_o the_o spirit_n lead_v so_o to_o do_v which_o every_o one_o come_v to_o in_o themselves_o will_v willing_o and_o natural_o assent_v to_o and_o if_o any_o through_o disobedience_n or_o vnclearness_n do_v not_o all_o that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o do_v she_o be_v to_o deny_v they_o her_o spiritual_a fellowship_n in_o case_n the_o nature_n of_o their_o disobedience_n be_v of_o that_o consequence_n as_o may_v deserve_v such_o a_o censure_n but_o by_o no_o mean_n for_o matter_n of_o conscience_n to_o molest_v trouble_v or_o persecute_v any_o in_o their_o outward_o who_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o compare_v these_o three_o serious_o together_o i_o be_o hopeful_a will_v need_v no_o further_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o difference_n but_o if_o any_o will_v further_o object_n what_o if_o it_o fall_v out_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la year_n 1679_o that_o the_o teacher_n elder_n or_o plurality_n do_v decide_v and_o from_o thence_o will_v say_v this_o be_v like_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o false_a church_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o a_o wrong_a judgement_n as_o we_o have_v not_o say_v it_o be_v of_o a_o right_n and_o indeed_o objection_n answ._n to_o conclude_v it_o be_v so_o will_v necessary_o condemn_v the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n where_o we_o see_v the_o teacher_n and_o elder_n and_o so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v observe_v the_o great_a number_n do_v agree_v to_o the_o decision_n act_v 1.15_o for_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v right_o and_o according_a to_o truth_n it_o
they_o may_v be_v just_o punish_v if_o these_o say_n do_v not_o plain_o and_o evident_o import_n that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n we_o must_v not_o then_o seek_v these_o man_n opinion_n from_o their_o word_n but_o some_o way_n else_o it_o seem_v as_o if_o they_o have_v assume_v to_o themselves_o that_o monstrous_a and_o twofold_a will_v they_o feign_v of_o god_n one_o by_o which_o they_o declare_v their_o mind_n open_o and_o another_o more_o secret_a and_o hide_a which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o nor_o do_v it_o at_o all_o help_v they_o to_o say_v that_o man_n sin_n willing_o since_o that_o willingness_n proclivity_n and_o propensity_n to_o evil_n be_v according_a to_o their_o judgement_n so_o necessary_o impose_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o can_v but_o be_v willing_a because_o god_n have_v will_v and_o decree_v he_o to_o be_v so_o which_o shift_n be_v just_a as_o if_o i_o shall_v take_v a_o child_n uncapable_a to_o resist_v i_o and_o throw_v it_o down_o from_o a_o great_a precipice_n the_o weight_n of_o the_o child_n body_n indeed_o make_v it_o go_v ready_o down_o and_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o fall_n upon_o some_o rock_n or_o stone_n beat_v out_o its_o brain_n and_o kill_v it_o now_o then_o i_o pray_v though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o child_n go_v willing_o down_o for_o i_o suppose_v it_o as_o to_o its_o mind_n be_v uncapable_a of_o any_o will_v and_o the_o weight_n of_o its_o body_n and_o not_o any_o immediate_a stroke_n of_o my_o hand_n who_o perhaps_o be_o at_o a_o great_a distance_n make_v it_o die_v whether_o be_v the_o child_n or_o i_o the_o proper_a cause_n of_o its_o death_n let_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n judge_n if_o god_n part_n be_v with_o they_o as_o great_a yea_o more_o immediate_a in_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n as_o by_o the_o testimony_n above_o bring_v do_v appear_v whether_o do_v not_o this_o make_v he_o not_o only_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o more_o unjust_a than_o the_o unjust_a of_o man_n §_o iii_o second_o this_o doctrine_n be_v injurious_a to_o god_n because_o it_o make_v he_o delight_v in_o the_o death_n of_o sinner_n yea_o sinner_n 2._o it_o make_v god_n delight_n in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o to_o will_v many_o to_o die_v in_o their_o sin_n contrary_a to_o these_o scripture_n ezech._n 33.11_o 1_o tim._n 2.3_o 2_o pet._n 3.9_o for_o if_o he_o have_v create_v man_n only_o for_o this_o very_a end_n that_o he_o may_v show_v forth_o his_o justice_n and_o power_n in_o they_o as_o these_o man_n affirm_v and_o for_o effect_v thereof_o have_v not_o only_o withhold_v from_o they_o the_o mean_n of_o do_v good_a but_o also_o predestinate_v the_o evil_a that_o they_o may_v fall_v into_o it_o and_o that_o he_o incline_v and_o force_v they_o into_o great_a sin_n certain_o he_o must_v necessary_o delight_v in_o their_o death_n and_o will_v they_o to_o die_v see_v against_o his_o own_o will_v he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n §_o iv_o three_o it_o be_v high_o injurious_a to_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o to_o the_o efficacy_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o gospel_n ineffectual_a 3._o it_o render_v christ_n mediation_n ineffectual_a for_o it_o render_v his_o mediation_n ineffectual_a as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o by_o his_o suffering_n thorough_o break_v down_o the_o middle_a wall_n nor_o yet_o remove_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n or_o purchase_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o all_o mankind_n if_o it_o be_v afore_o decree_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v of_o no_o service_n to_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o allege_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o efficacy_n enough_o to_o have_v save_v all_o mankind_n if_o in_o effect_n its_o virtue_n be_v not_o so_o far_o extend_v as_o to_o put_v all_o mankind_n into_o a_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n mock_n 4._o it_o make_v the_o gospel_n a_o mock_n four_o it_o make_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o mere_a mock_n and_o illusion_n if_o many_o of_o these_o to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v be_v by_o a_o irrevocable_a decree_n exclude_v from_o be_v benefit_v by_o it_o it_o whole_o make_v vseless_a the_o preach_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o gospel-promises_a and_o threaten_n as_o be_v all_o relative_a to_o a_o former_a decree_n and_o mean_n before_o appoint_v to_o such_o which_o because_o they_o can_v fail_v man_n needs_o do_v nothing_o but_o wait_v for_o that_o irresistible_a snatch_v which_o will_v come_v though_o it_o be_v but_o at_o the_o last_o hour_n of_o his_o life_n if_o he_o be_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n and_o be_v his_o diligence_n and_o wait_v what_o it_o can_v he_o shall_v never_o attain_v it_o if_o he_o belong_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n wrath._n 5._o it_o make_v the_o come_v of_o christ_n a_o act_n of_o wrath._n five_o it_o make_v the_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n love_n to_o the_o world_n and_o transact_v for_o the_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n to_o have_v be_v rather_o a_o testimony_n of_o god_n be_v wrath_n to_o the_o world_n and_o one_o of_o the_o great_a judgement_n and_o severe_a act_n of_o god_n be_v indignation_n towards_o mankind_n it_o be_v only_o ordain_v to_o save_v a_o very_a few_o and_o for_o the_o harden_v obdure_v and_o augment_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o far_o great_a number_n of_o man_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o true_o in_o it_o the_o cause_n of_o which_o unbelief_n again_o as_o the_o divine_v so_o call_v above_o assert_v be_v the_o hide_a counsel_n of_o god_n certain_o the_o come_v of_o christ_n be_v never_o to_o they_o a_o testimony_n of_o god_n love_n but_o rather_o of_o his_o implacable_a wrath_n and_o if_o the_o world_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o far_o great_a number_n of_o such_o as_o live_v in_o it_o god_n never_o love_v the_o world_n according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n but_o rather_o hate_v it_o great_o in_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v crucify_a in_o it_o devil_n 6._o it_o render_v mankind_n in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o devil_n §_o v._o sixthly_a this_o doctrine_n be_v high_o injurious_a to_o mankind_n for_o it_o render_v they_o in_o a_o far_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n for_o these_o be_v sometime_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o have_v stand_v and_o to_o suffer_v only_o for_o their_o own_o gild_n whereas_o many_o million_o of_o man_n be_v for_o ever_o torment_v according_a to_o they_o for_o adam_n sin_n which_o they_o neither_o know_v of_o nor_o ever_o be_v accessary_a to_o it_o render_v they_o worse_o than_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n of_o who_o the_o master_n require_v not_o more_o than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v and_o if_o they_o be_v kill_v death_n to_o they_o be_v the_o end_n of_o sorrow_n whereas_o man_n be_v for_o ever_o torment_v for_o not_o do_v that_o which_o he_o never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o put_v he_o into_o a_o far_o worse_a condition_n than_o pharaoh_n put_v the_o israelite_n for_o though_o he_o withhold_v straw_n from_o they_o pharaoh_n than_o the_o israelite_n under_o pharaoh_n yet_o by_o much_o labour_n and_o pain_n they_o can_v have_v get_v it_o but_o from_o man_n they_o make_v god_n to_o withhold_v all_o mean_n of_o salvation_n so_o that_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n attain_v it_o yea_o they_o place_v mankind_n in_o that_o condition_n condition_n tantalus_n his_o condition_n which_o the_o poet_n feign_v of_o tantalus_n who_o oppress_v with_o thirst_n stand_v in_o water_n up_o to_o the_o chin_n yet_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n reach_v it_o with_o his_o tongue_n and_o be_v torment_v with_o hunger_n have_v fruit_n hang_v at_o his_o very_a lip_n yet_o so_o as_o he_o can_v never_o lay●hold_v on_o they_o with_o his_o tooth_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o near_o he_o not_o to_o nourish_v he_o but_o to_o torment_v he_o so_o do_v these_o man_n they_o make_v the_o outward_a creation_n of_o the_o work_n of_o providence_n the_o smiting_n of_o the_o conscience_n sufficient_a to_o convince_v the_o heathen_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o to_o condemn_v and_o judge_v they_o but_o not_o at_o all_o to_o help_v they_o to_o salvation_n they_o make_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o offer_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o prayer_n and_o good_a work_v sufficient_a to_o condemn_v those_o they_o account_v reprobate_n within_o the_o church_n serve_v only_o to_o inform_v they_o to_o beget_v a_o seem_a faith_n and_o vain_a hope_n yet_o because_o of_o a_o secret_a impotency_n which_o they_o have_v from_o their_o infancy_n all_o these_o be_v whole_o
strange_a way_n see_v according_a to_o this_o most_o true_a doctrine_n the_o gospel_n reach_v all_o of_o whatsoever_o condition_n age_n or_o nation_n eleven_o it_o be_v real_o and_o effective_o though_o not_o in_o so_o many_o word_n cons._n 11_o yet_o by_o deed_n establish_v and_o confirm_v by_o all_o the_o preacher_n promulgator_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o now_o be_v even_o by_o those_o that_o otherways_o in_o their_o judgement_n oppose_v this_o doctrine_n in_o that_o they_o all_o wherever_o they_o have_v be_v or_o be_v or_o whatsoever_o people_n place_n or_o country_n they_o come_v to_o do_v preach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o every_o individual_a among_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v entreat_v and_o desire_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o have_v die_v for_o they_o so_o that_o what_o they_o deny_v in_o the_o general_n they_o acknowledge_v of_o every_o particular_a there_o be_v no_o man_n to_o who_o they_o do_v not_o preach_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n tell_v he_o jesus_n christ_n call_v and_o will_v he_o to_o believe_v and_o be_v save_v and_o that_o if_o he_o refuse_v he_o shall_v therefore_o be_v condemn_v and_o that_o his_o condemnation_n be_v of_o himself_o such_o be_v the_o evidence_n and_o virtue_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o constrain_v its_o adversary_n even_o against_o their_o will_n to_o plead_v for_o it_o cons._n 12_o last_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n the_o former_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o arminian_o and_o evit_v by_o the_o calvinist_n concern_v every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o be_v by_o alter_v the_o assumption_n render_v invincible_a thus_o that_o which_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v be_v true_a but_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v merciful_a unto_o he_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n this_o assumption_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v see_v his_o mercy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n and_o herein_o the_o scripture_n every_o where_o declare_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v in_o that_o he_o invite_v and_o call_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n and_o have_v open_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n for_o they_o so_o that_o though_o those_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n who_o never_o come_v to_o know_v of_o it_o yet_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v be_v merciful_a to_o they_o if_o they_o follow_v his_o way_n and_o that_o he_o be_v merciful_a unto_o they_o in_o that_o he_o reprove_v they_o for_o evil_a and_o incourage_v they_o to_o good_a neither_o ought_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v unmerciful_a to_o he_o or_o that_o he_o have_v from_o the_o beginning_n ordain_v he_o to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o evil_a inclination_n god_n our_o adversary_n unmerciful_a assertion_n of_o god_n and_o so_o do_v wicked_o as_o a_o mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n which_o be_v it_o true_a as_o our_o adversary_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v of_o many_o thousand_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o a_o man_n may_v not_o believe_v for_o certain_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o these_o good_a and_o excellent_a consequence_n follow_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n so_o from_o the_o probation_n of_o they_o it_o will_v yet_o more_o evident_o appear_v to_o which_o before_o i_o come_v it_o be_v requisite_a to_o speak_v somewhat_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o will_v bring_v great_a light_n to_o the_o matter_n for_o from_o the_o not_o right_a understanding_n of_o a_o matter_n under_o debate_n sometime_o both_o argument_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o objection_n on_o the_o other_o be_v bring_v which_o do_v not_o way_n hit_v the_o case_n and_o hereby_o also_o our_o sense_n and_o judgement_n therein_o will_v be_v more_o full_o understand_v and_o open_v §_o xii_o first_o then_o by_o this_o day_n and_o time_n of_o visitation_n which_o we_o say_v quest._n 1_o god_n give_v unto_o all_o during_o which_o they_o may_v be_v save_v question_n the_o state_v of_o the_o question_n we_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o whole_a time_n of_o every_o man_n life_n though_o to_o some_o it_o may_v be_v extend_v even_o to_o the_o very_a hour_n of_o death_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o thief_n convert_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o such_o a_o season_n at_o least_o as_o sufficient_o exonerate_v god_n of_o every_o man_n condemnation_n which_o to_o some_o may_v be_v soon_o and_o to_o other_o late_a according_a as_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o wisdom_n see_v meet_v so_o that_o many_o man_n may_v outlive_v this_o day_n after_o which_o there_o may_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o they_o visitation_n that_o many_o may_v outlive_v the_o day_n of_o god_n visitation_n and_o god_n just_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v harden_v as_o a_o just_a punishment_n of_o their_o unbelief_n and_o even_o raise_v they_o up_o as_o instrument_n of_o wrath_n and_o make_v they_o a_o scourge_n one_o against_o another_o whence_o to_o man_n in_o this_o condition_n may_v be_v fit_o apply_v those_o scripture_n which_o be_v abuse_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n incite_v man_n necessary_o to_o sin_n this_o be_v notable_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 1._o from_o v._n 17._o to_o the_o end_n but_o especial_o vers_n 28._o and_o even_o as_o they_o do_v not_o like_a to_o retain_v god_n in_o their_o knowledge_n god_n give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o many_o may_v outlive_v this_o day_n of_o god_n gracious_a visitation_n unto_o they_o be_v show_v by_o the_o example_n of_o esau_n hebr._n 12.16_o 17._o who_o sell_v his_o birthright_n so_o he_o have_v it_o once_o and_o be_v capable_a to_o have_v keep_v it_o but_o afterward_o when_o he_o will_v have_v inherit_v the_o blessing_n he_o be_v reject_v this_o appear_v also_o by_o christ_n weep_v over_o jerusalem_n luke_n 19.42_o say_v if_o thou_o have_v know_v in_o this_o thy_o day_n the_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o thy_o peace_n but_o now_o they_o be_v hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n which_o plain_o import_v a_o time_n when_o they_o may_v have_v know_v they_o which_o now_o be_v remove_v from_o they_o though_o they_o be_v yet_o alive_a but_o of_o this_o more_o shall_v be_v say_v hereafter_o §_o xiii_o second_o by_o this_o seed_n grace_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o light_n quest._n 2_o wherewith_o we_o say_v every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v and_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o it_o which_o strive_v with_o they_o in_o order_n to_o save_o they_o and_o which_o may_v by_o the_o stubbornness_n and_o wickedness_n of_o man_n will_v be_v quench_v bruise_a wound_a pressed-down_a slay_v and_o crucify_v we_o understand_v not_o the_o proper_a essence_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n precise_o take_v which_o be_v not_o divisible_a into_o part_n and_o measure_n as_o be_v a_o must_v pure_a simple_a be_v void_a of_o all_o composition_n or_o division_n and_o therefore_o can_v neither_o be_v resist_v hurt_v wound_a crucify_a or_o slay_v by_o all_o the_o effort_n and_o strength_n of_o man_n describe_v the_o light_n what_o it_o be_v and_o its_o property_n describe_v but_o we_o understand_v a_o spiritual_a heavenly_a and_o invisible_a principle_n in_o which_o god_n as_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n dwell_v a_o measure_n of_o which_o divine_a and_o glorious_a life_n be_v in_o all_o man_n as_o a_o seed_n which_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n draw_v invite_v and_o incline_v to_o god_n and_o this_o we_o call_v vehiculum_fw-la dei_fw-la or_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n dei._n vehiculum_fw-la dei._n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n of_o which_o all_o the_o saint_n do_v feed_v and_o be_v thereby_o nourish_v unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o as_o every_o unrighteous_a action_n be_v witness_v against_o and_o reprove_v by_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n so_o by_o such_o action_n it_o be_v hurt_v wound_a and_o slay_v and_o resile_n or_o flee_v from_o they_o even_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n flee_v from_o that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a nature_n to_o it_o now_o because_o it_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o god_n nor_o christ_n but_o wherever_o it_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v as_o wrap_v up_o therein_o therefore_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v resist_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v resist_v and_o where_o it_o be_v bear_v down_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v press_v as_o a_o cart_n under_o sheaf_n and_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o crucify_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o
we_o §_o iii_o first_o then_o as_o by_o the_o explanation_n of_o the_o former_a thesis_n appear_v expl._n 1_o we_o renounce_v all_o natural_a power_n and_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o in_o order_n to_o bring_v we_o out_o of_o our_o lose_a and_o fall●n_v condition_n and_o first_o nature_n god_n justification_n spring_v of_o and_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o confess_v that_o as_o of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o that_o be_v good_a so_o neither_o can_v we_o procure_v remission_n of_o sin_n or_o justification_n by_o any_o act_n of_o our_o own_o so_o as_o to_o merit_v it_o or_o draw_v it_o as_o a_o debt_n from_o god_n due_a unto_o we_o but_o we_o acknowledge_v all_o to_o be_v of_o and_o from_o his_o love_n which_o be_v the_o original_a and_o fundamental_a cause_n of_o our_o acceptance_n second_o god_n manifest_v this_o love_n towards_o we_o in_o the_o send_n of_o his_o expl._n 2_o belove_a son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n into_o the_o world_n who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o a_o offer_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sweet-smelling_a savour_n we_o christ_n give_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o and_o have_v make_v peace_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v we_o unto_o himself_o and_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n unto_o god_n and_o suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o unto_o god_n three_o then_o forasmuch_o as_o all_o man_n who_o have_v come_v to_o man_n estate_n the_o man_n jesus_n only_o except_v have_v sin_v therefore_o all_o have_v need_n of_o expl._n 3_o this_o saviour_n to_o remove_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o they_o due_a to_o their_o offence_n in_o this_o respect_n he_o be_v true_o say_v to_o have_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n and_o therefore_o be_v the_o only_a mediator_n have_v qualify_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o so_o that_o our_o former_a sin_n stand_v not_o in_o our_o way_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o most_o satisfactory_a sacrifice_n remove_v and_o pardon_v sin_n to_o remission_n of_o sin_n neither_o do_v we_o think_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v seek_v or_o obtain_v any_o other_o way_n or_o by_o any_o work_n or_o sacrifice_n whatsoever_o though_o as_o have_v be_v say_v former_o they_o may_v come_v to_o partake_v of_o this_o remission_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n so_o then_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n man._n the_o only_a mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man._n even_o while_o we_o be_v enemy_n that_o be_v he_o offer_v reconciliation_n unto_o we_o we_o be_v put_v into_o a_o capacity_n of_o be_v reconcile_v god_n be_v willing_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o iniquity_n and_o to_o accept_v we_o as_o be_v well_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 5.19_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n unto_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o and_o have_v put_v in_o we_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o next_o verse_n entreat_v they_o in_o christ_n stead_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n intimate_v that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v remove_v by_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n jesus_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o they_o and_o ready_a to_o remit_v the_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a if_o they_o repent_v redemption_n a_o twofold_a redemption_n we_o consider_v then_o our_o redemption_n in_o a_o twofold_a respect_n or_o state_n both_o which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v perfect_a though_o in_o their_o application_n to_o we_o the_o one_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v without_o respect_n to_o the_o other_o we_o i._o the_o redemption_n of_o christ_n without_o we_o the_o first_o be_v the_o redemption_n perform_v and_o accomplish_v by_o christ_n for_o we_o in_o his_o crucify_a body_n without_o we_o the_o other_o be_v the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n in_o we_o which_o no_o less_o proper_o be_v call_v and_o account_v a_o redemption_n than_o the_o former_a the_o first_o than_o be_v that_o whereby_o man_n as_o he_o stand_v in_o the_o fall_n be_v put_v into_o a_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n and_o have_v convey_v unto_o he_o a_o measure_n of_o that_o power_n virtue_n spirit_n life_n and_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o as_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o counterbalance_n overcome_v and_o root-out_a the_o evil_a seed_n wherewith_o we_o be_v natural_o as_o in_o the_o fall_n leaven_v we_o ii_o the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n in_o we_o the_o second_o be_v that_o whereby_o we_o witness_v and_o know_v this_o pure_a and_o perfect_a redemption_n in_o ourselves_o purify_n cleanse_v and_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o corruption_n and_o bring_v we_o into_o unity_n favour_n and_o friendship_n with_o god_n by_o the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o we_o that_o be_v lose_v in_o adam_n plunge_v in_o the_o bitter_a and_o corrupt_a seed_n unable_a of_o ourselves_o to_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n but_o natural_o join_v and_o unite_v to_o evil_a forward_a and_o propense_a to_o all_o iniquity_n servant_n and_o slave_n to_o the_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o darkness_n be_v notwithstanding_o all_o this_o so_o far_o reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n while_o enemy_n that_o we_o be_v put_v into_o a_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n have_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n offer_v unto_o we_o and_o god_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o we_o in_o christ_n call_v and_o invite_v we_o to_o himself_o in_o which_o respect_n we_o understand_v these_o scripture_n 3.18_o scripture_n eph._n 2.15_o 1_o john_n 4.10_o ezech._n 16.6_o 1_o pet._n 2.22_o 24._o and_o 3.18_o he_o slay_v the_o enmity_n in_o himself_o he_o love_v we_o first_o see_v we_o in_o our_o blood_n he_o say_v unto_o we_o live_v he_o who_o do_v not_o sin_v his_o own_o self_n bare_a our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n and_o he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a by_o the_o second_o we_o witness_v this_o capacity_n bring_v into_o act_n whereby_o receive_v and_o not_o resist_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o death_n to_o wit_n the_o light_n spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n reveal_v to_o we_o we_o witness_v and_o possess_v a_o real_a true_a and_o inward_a redemption_n from_o the_o power_n and_o prevalency_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o come_v to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o redeem_a justify_v and_o make_v righteous_a and_o to_o a_o sensible_a union_n and_o friendship_n with_o god_n thus_o he_o die_v 3.10_o die_v tit._n 2.14_o phil._n 3.10_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o thus_o we_o know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n be_v make_v conformable_a to_o we_o this_o last_o follow_v the_o first_o in_o order_n and_o be_v a_o consequence_n of_o it_o proceed_v from_o it_o as_o a_o effect_n from_o its_o cause_n so_o as_o none_o can_v have_v enjoy_v the_o last_o without_o the_o first_o have_v be_v such_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o also_o can_v none_o now_o partake_v of_o the_o first_o but_o as_o he_o witness_v the_o last_o wherefore_o as_o to_o we_o they_o be_v both_o cause_n of_o our_o justification_n the_o first_o the_o procure_v efficient_a the_o other_o the_o formal_a cause_n four_o we_o understand_v not_o by_o this_o justification_n by_o christ_n bare_o the_o expl._n 4_o good_a work_n even_o as_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n for_o they_o as_o protestant_n true_o affirm_v be_v rather_o a_o effect_n of_o justification_n than_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o work_n the_o formation_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o beget_v good_a work_n but_o we_o understand_v the_o formation_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o christ_n bear_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o we_o from_o which_o good_a work_n as_o natural_o proceed_v as_o fruit_n from_o a_o fruitful_a tree_n it_o be_v this_o inward_a birth_n in_o we_o bring_v forth_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n in_o we_o that_o do_v justify_v we_o which_o have_v remove_v and_o do_v away_o the_o contrary_a nature_n and_o spirit_n that_o do_v bear_v rule_n and_o bring_v condemnation_n now_o be_v in_o dominion_n over_o all_o in_o our_o heart_n those_o then_o that_o come_v to_o know_v christ_n thus_o form_v in_o they_o do_v enjoy_v he_o whole_o and_o undivided_a who_o be_v the_o lord_z our_o righteousness_n jer._n 23.6_o this_o be_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v put_v he_o on_o who_o god_n therefore_o true_o account_v righteous_a and_o just._n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o
this_o be_v that_o other_o say_v of_o the_o same_o apostle_n gal._n 4.19_o my_o little_a child_n of_o who_o i_o travel_v in_o birth_n again_o until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o you_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n term_v this_o christ_n within_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n col._n 1.27_o 28._o now_o that_o which_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o glory_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o which_o we_o immediate_o and_o most_o near_o rely_v upon_o for_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o whereby_o we_o be_v real_o and_o true_o make_v just._n and_o as_o we_o do_v not_o hereby_o deny_v but_o the_o original_a and_o fundamental_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o the_o appearance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n who_o by_o his_o life_n death_n reconciliation_n christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n have_v open_v a_o way_n for_o our_o reconciliation_n suffering_n and_o obedience_n make_v a_o way_n for_o our_o reconciliation_n and_o become_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a and_o purchase_v unto_o we_o this_o seed_n and_o grace_n from_o which_o this_o birth_n arise_v and_o in_o which_o jesus_n christ_n be_v inward_o receive_v form_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o we_o in_o his_o own_o pure_a and_o holy_a image_n of_o righteousness_n by_o which_o our_o soul_n live_v unto_o god_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o he_o and_o have_v put_v he_o on_o even_o as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v eph._n 4.23_o 24_o gal._n 3.27_o we_o stand_v justify_v and_o save_v in_o and_o by_o he_o and_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n rom._n 3.24_o 1_o cor._n 6.11_o tit._n 3.7_o so_o again_o reciprocal_o we_o be_v hereby_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o his_o cleanse_a blood_n be_v near_o to_o wash_v away_o every_o sin_n and_o infirmity_n and_o to_o heal_v all_o our_o backslide_n as_o often_o as_o we_o turn_v towards_o he_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o become_v renew_a by_o his_o spirit_n those_o then_o that_o find_v he_o thus_o raise_v and_o rule_v in_o they_o have_v a_o true_a ground_n of_o hope_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n but_o let_v not_o any_o deceive_v themselves_o so_o as_o to_o foster_v themselves_o in_o a_o vain_a hope_n and_o confidence_n that_o by_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v justify_v so_o long_o as_o sin_n lie_v at_o their_o door_n gen._n 4.7_o iniquity_n prevail_v and_o they_o remain_v yet_o vnrenew_v and_o unregenerate_a lest_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o i_o know_v you_o not_o let_v that_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v remember_v not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_z shall_v enter_v but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n matth._n 7.21_o to_o which_o let_v these_o excellent_a say_n of_o the_o belove_a disciple_n be_v add_v little_a child_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a even_o as_o he_o be_v righteous_a he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n because_o if_o our_o heart_n condemn_v we_o god_n be_v great_a than_o our_o heart_n and_o know_v all_o thing_n 1_o john_n 3.7_o and_o 20._o many_o famous_a protestant_n bear_v witness_n to_o this_o inward_a justification_n by_o christ_n inward_o reveal_v and_o form_v in_o man_n 162._o borhaeus_fw-la in_o gen._n pag._n 162._o as_o 1._o m._n borhaeus_fw-la in_o the_o imputation_n say_v he_o wherein_o christ_n be_v ascribe_v and_o impute_v to_o believer_n for_o righteousness_n the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o merit_n be_v equal_o include_v and_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v confess_v justification_n the_o testimony_n of_o famous_a protestant_n of_o inward_a justification_n that_o christ_n be_v our_o righteousness_n as_o well_o from_o his_o merit_n satisfaction_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n obtain_v by_o he_o as_o from_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o righteousness_n and_o if_o we_o do_v this_o we_o shall_v consider_v the_o whole_a christ_n propose_v to_o we_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o not_o any_o single_a part_n of_o he_o the_o same_o man_n p._n 169._o in_o our_o justification_n then_o christ_n be_v consider_v who_o breath_n and_o life_n in_o we_o to_o wit_n by_o his_o spirit_n put-on_z by_o we_o concern_v which_o putting-on_n the_o apostle_n say_v you_o have_v put_v on_o christ._n and_o again_o p._n 171._o we_o endeavour_v to_o treat_v in_o justification_n not_o of_o part_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o whole_o in_o so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v our_o righteousness_n every_o way_n and_o a_o little_a after_o as_o than_o bless_a paul_n in_o our_o justification_n when_o he_o say_v who_o he_o justify_v they_o he_o glorify_v comprehend_v all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o our_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o our_o renew_n which_o fit_v we_o for_o attain_v unto_o glory_n such_o as_o faith_n righteousness_n christ_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o righteousness_n exhibit_v by_o he_o whereby_o we_o be_v regenerate_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o justification_n which_o the_o law_n require_v so_o we_o also_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n comprehend_v in_o this_o cause_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o recovery_n of_o righteousness_n and_o and_o innocency_n and_o p._n 181._o the_o form_n say_v he_o of_o our_o justification_n be_v the_o divine_a righteousness_n itself_o by_o which_o we_o be_v form_v just_a and_o good_a this_o be_v jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v esteem_v our_o righteousness_n partly_o from_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o partly_o from_o the_o renew_n and_o the_o restore_a of_o that_o integrity_n which_o be_v lose_v by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n so_o that_o this_o new_a and_o heavenly_a adam_n being_z put-on_z by_o we_o of_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v you_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n you_o have_v put_v he_o on_o i_o say_v as_o the_o form_n so_o the_o righteousness_n wisdom_n and_o life_n of_o god_n so_o also_o affirm_v claudius_n alberius_n inuncunanus_fw-la inuncunanus_fw-la inuncunanus_fw-la see_v his_o orat._n apodict_n lausaniae_fw-la excus_n 1587._o orat._n 2._o p._n 86_o 87._o zuinglius_fw-la also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n as_o cite_v by_o himmelius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la c._n 7._o p._n 60._o say_v that_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v true_a justification_n essius_fw-la essius_fw-la which_o alone_o suffice_v to_o justify_v essius_fw-la upon_o 1_o cor._n 6.11_o say_v lest_o christian_a righteousness_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o consist_v in_o the_o wash_v alone_o that_o be_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n he_o add_v the_o other_o degree_n or_o part_n but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v that_o be_v you_o have_v attain_v to_o purity_n so_o that_o you_o be_v now_o true_o holy_a before_o god_n last_o express_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o benefit_n receive_v in_o one_o word_n which_o include_v both_o the_o part_n but_o you_o be_v justify_v the_o apostle_n add_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v by_o his_o merit_n and_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o god_n and_o communicate_v to_o we_o by_o christ._n and_o last_o r._n baxter_n baxter_n r._n baxter_n a_o famous_a english_a preacher_n who_o yet_o live_v in_o his_o book_n call_v aphorism_n of_o justification_n p._n 80._o say_v that_o some_o ignorant_a wretch_n gnash_v their_o tooth_n at_o this_o doctrine_n as_o if_o it_o be_v flat_a popery_n not_o understanding_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v all_o out_o of_o christ_n in_o ourselves_o tho'_o wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o §_o ix_o the_o three_o thing_n propose_v to_o be_v consider_v be_v concern_v good_a position_n iii_o work_n their_o necessity_n to_o justification_n i_o suppose_v there_o be_v enough_o say_v before_o to_o clear_v we_o from_o any_o imputation_n of_o be_v popish_a in_o this_o matter_n work_n good_a work_n but_o if_o it_o be_v query_v whether_o we_o have_v not_o say_v or_o will_v not_o affirm_v quest._n that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n i_o answer_v i_o hope_v none_o need_v neither_o aught_o to_o take_v offence_n answ._n if_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o use_v the_o plain_a language_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o say_v express_o in_o answer_n hereunto_o james_n 2.24_o you_o see_v then_o justification_n that_o work_n be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n how_o that_o by_o work_v a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o i_o shall_v not_o offer_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o say_n since_o what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v any_o man_n that_o will_v read_v and_o
3_o 4_o 5._o be_v consider_v where_o though_o their_o be_v find_v without_o fault_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o present_a time_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o without_o respect_n to_o their_o innocency_n while_n upon_o earth_n and_o their_o be_v redeem_a from_o among_o man_n and_o no_o guile_n find_v in_o their_o mouth_n be_v express_o mention_v in_o the_o time_n past_a but_o i_o shall_v proceed_v now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n to_o answer_v the_o objection_n which_o indeed_o sect._n iii_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o our_o opposer_n §_o ix_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o their_o chief_a and_o great_a argument_n object_n i_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 1.8_o if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o this_o they_o think_v invincible_a but_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a to_o see_v man_n so_o blind_v with_o partiality_n how_o many_o answ._n 1_o scripture_n tenfold_o more_o plain_a do_v they_o reject_v and_o yet_o stick_v so_o tenacious_o to_o this_o that_o can_v receive_v so_o many_o answer_n as_o first_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n will_n not_o import_v the_o apostle_n himself_o to_o be_v include_v object_v if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n object_v sometime_o the_o scripture_n use_v this_o manner_n of_o expression_n when_o the_o person_n speak_v can_v be_v include_v which_o manner_n of_o speech_n the_o grammarian_n call_v metaschematismus_fw-la thus_o james_n 3.9_o 10._o speak_v of_o the_o tongue_n say_v therewith_o bless_v we_o god_n and_o therewith_o curse_v we_o man_n add_v these_o thing_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v who_o from_o this_o will_v conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v one_o of_o those_o curser_n but_o second_o this_o objection_n hit_v not_o the_o matter_n he_o say_v not_o answ._n 2_o we_o sin_v daily_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n far_o less_o that_o the_o very_a good_a work_n which_o god_n work_v in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v sin_n yea_o the_o next_o verse_n clear_o show_v that_o upon_o confession_n and_o repentance_n we_o be_v not_o only_o forgive_v but_o also_o cleanse_v he_o be_v faithful_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o vnrighteousness_n here_o be_v both_o a_o forgiveness_n and_o remove_n of_o the_o guilt_n and_o a_o cleanse_n or_o remove_v of_o the_o filth_n for_o to_o make_v forgiveness_n and_o cleanse_v to_o belong_v both_o to_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o gild_n as_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o from_o the_o text_n so_o it_o be_v a_o most_o violent_a force_n of_o the_o word_n and_o will_v imply_v a_o needless_a tautology_n the_o apostle_n have_v show_v how_o that_o not_o the_o gild_n only_o but_o even_o the_o filth_n also_o of_o sin_n be_v remove_v subsume_v his_o word_n in_o the_o time_n past_a in_o verse_n 10._o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v not_o sin_v we_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n three_o as_o augustine_n well_o observe_v in_o his_o exposition_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n not_o to_o sin_v another_o thing_n answ._n 3_o not_o to_o have_v sin_n the_o apostle_n word_n be_v not_o if_o we_o say_v we_o sin_v not_o sin_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n not_o to_o sin_n and_o another_o thing_n not_o to_o have_v sin_n or_o commit_v not_o sin_n daily_o but_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n and_o betwixt_o these_o two_o there_o be_v a_o manifest_a difference_n for_o in_o respect_n all_o have_v sin_v as_o we_o free_o acknowledge_v all_o may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o sense_n to_o have_v sin_n again_o sin_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n which_o may_v be_v in_o those_o that_o be_v redeem_a from_o actual_a sin_v but_o as_o to_o the_o temptation_n and_o provocation_n proceed_v from_o it_o be_v resist_v by_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o not_o yield_v to_o they_o be_v the_o devil_n sin_n that_o tempt_v not_o the_o man_n that_o be_v preserve_v four_o this_o be_v consider_v as_o also_o how_o positive_a and_o how_o plain_o once_o and_o again_o the_o answ._n 4_o same_o apostle_n be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o epistle_n as_o in_o divers_a place_n above_o cite_v be_v it_o equal_a or_o rational_a to_o strain_v this_o one_o place_n present_o after_o so_o qualify_v and_o subsume_v in_o the_o time_n past_a to_o contradict_v not_o only_o other_o positive_a expression_n of_o he_o but_o the_o whole_a tendency_n of_o his_o epistle_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a command_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o scripture_n second_o object_n two_o their_o second_o objection_n be_v from_o two_o place_n of_o scripture_n much_o of_o one_o signification_n the_o one_o be_v 1_o king_n 8.46_o for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o sin_v not_o the_o other_o be_v eccles._n 7.20_o for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o just_a man_n upon_o earth_n that_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o i_o answer_v first_o these_o affirm_v nothing_o of_o a_o daily_a and_o continual_a sin_v so_o as_o never_o to_o be_v redeem_a from_o it_o but_o only_o that_o all_o have_v sin_v or_o that_o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v not_o sin_n though_o not_o always_o so_o as_o never_o to_o cease_v to_o sin_n and_o in_o this_o lie_v the_o question_n yea_o in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o king_n he_o speak_v answ._n within_o two_o verse_n of_o the_o return_v of_o such_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n and_o heart_n respect_v diversity_n of_o season_n and_o dispensation_n respect_v which_o imply_v a_o possibility_n of_o leave_v off_o sin_n second_o there_o be_v a_o respect_n to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o season_n and_o dispensation_n for_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o solomon_n time_n there_o be_v none_o that_o sin_v not_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o now_o or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n be_v not_o now_o attainable_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o non_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la sequela_fw-la and_o last_o this_o whole_a objection_n hang_v upon_o a_o false_a interpretation_n sin_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o sin_v not_o or_o who_o may_v not_o sin_v for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v read_v in_o the_o potential_a mood_n thus_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o may_v not_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o indicative_a so_o both_o the_o old_a latin_a junius_n and_o tremellius_n and_o vatablus_n have_v it_o and_o the_o same_o word_n be_v so_o use_v psal._n 119.11_o i_o have_v hide_v thy_o word_n in_o my_o heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o i_o may_v not_o sin_v against_o thou_o in_o the_o potential_a mood_n and_o not_o in_o the_o indicative_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o english_a which_o be_v more_o answerable_a to_o the_o universal_a scope_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o sense_n almost_o of_o all_o interpreter_n doubtless_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o understand_v and_o the_o other_o interpretation_n reject_v as_o spurious_a object_n iii_o three_o they_o object_v some_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 7.19_o for_o the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_a which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v and_o verse_n 24._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n answ._n i_o answer_v this_o place_n infer_v nothing_o unless_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o apostle_n here_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o own_o condition_n and_o not_o rather_o in_o the_o person_n of_o other_o or_o what_o he_o himself_o have_v sometime_o bear_v which_o be_v frequent_a in_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o curse_v in_o james_n beforementioned_a but_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o text_n that_o do_v clear_o signify_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o himself_o or_o of_o a_o condition_n he_o be_v then_o under_o or_o be_v always_o to_o be_v under_o yea_o on_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o former_a chapter_n as_o afore_o be_v at_o large_a show_v he_o declare_v they_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n demand_v how_o such_o shall_v yet_o live_v any_o long_a therein_o redeemer_n paul_n personate_v the_o wretched_a man_n to_o show_v they_o the_o redeemer_n second_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n only_o personate_v one_o not_o yet_o come_v to_o a_o spiritual_a condition_n in_o that_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 14._o but_o i_o be_o carnal_a sell_v under_o sin_n now_o be_v it_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n as_o to_o his_o own_o proper_a condition_n when_o he_o write_v that_o epistle_n be_v a_o carnal_a man_n who_o in_o chap._n 1._o testify_v of_o himself_o that_o
true_a faith_n this_o objection_n be_v very_o weak_a and_o apparent_o contrary_a to_o the_o text_n 1_o tim._n 1.19_o answ._n where_o the_o apostle_n add_v to_o faith_n a_o good_a conscience_n by_o way_n of_o complaint_n conscience_n a_o good_a and_o evil_a conscience_n whereas_o if_o their_o faith_n have_v be_v only_o seem_v and_o hypocritical_a the_o man_n have_v be_v better_a without_o it_o than_o with_o it_o neither_o have_v they_o be_v worthy_a of_o blame_n for_o lose_v that_o which_o in_o itself_o be_v evil._n but_o the_o apostle_n express_o add_v and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o show_v it_o be_v real_a neither_o can_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o man_n can_v true_o attain_v a_o good_a conscience_n without_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n save_v grace_n far_o less_o that_o a_o good_a conscience_n do_v consist_v with_o a_o seem_a false_a and_o hypocritical_a faith_n again_o these_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o regret_n clear_o import_n that_o these_o attainment_n they_o have_v fall_v from_o be_v good_a and_o real_a not_o false_a and_o deceitful_a else_o he_o will_v not_o have_v regret_v their_o fall_n from_o they_o and_o so_o he_o say_v positive_o they_o taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n not_o that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o which_o show_v this_o objection_n be_v very_o frivolous_a second_o they_o allege_v phil._n 1.6_o be_v confident_a of_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o object_n 2_o he_o which_o have_v begin_v a_o good_a work_n in_o you_o will_v perform_v it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n and_o 1_o pet._n 1.5_o who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n answ._n these_o scripture_n as_o they_o do_v not_o affirm_v any_o thing_n positive_o contrary_a to_o we_o so_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o than_o as_o the_o condition_n be_v perform_v upon_o our_o part_n see_v salvation_n be_v no_o otherways_o propose_v there_o but_o upon_o certain_a perform_v salvation_n be_v propose_v upon_o certain_a condition_n by_o we_o to_o be_v perform_v necessary_a condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o as_o have_v be_v above_o prove_v and_o as_o our_o adversary_n also_o acknowledge_v as_o rom._n 8.13_o for_o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v but_o if_o you_o through_o the_o spirit_n do_v mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n you_o shall_v live_v and_o hebr._n 3.14_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o hold_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o confidence_n steadfast_a unto_o the_o end_n for_o if_o these_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n upon_o which_o they_o build_v their_o objection_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v without_o these_o condition_n it_o will_v manifest_o overturn_v the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o their_o exhortation_n throughout_o all_o their_o write_n some_o other_o objection_n there_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n which_o be_v solve_v by_o the_o same_o answer_n which_o also_o because_o large_o treat_v of_o by_o other_o i_o omit_v to_o come_v to_o that_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v more_o especical_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o proposition_n in_o these_o word_n yet_o such_o a_o increase_n and_o stability_n in_o the_o truth_n may_v in_o this_o life_n be_v attain_v from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o total_a apostasy_n §_o iv_o as_o in_o the_o explanation_n of_o the_o five_o and_o six_o proposition_n i_o observe_v that_o some_o that_o have_v deny_v the_o error_n of_o other_o concern_v reprobation_n and_o affirm_v the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n do_v notwithstanding_o fall_v short_a in_o sufficient_o hold_v forth_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o give_v the_o contrary_a party_n a_o occasion_n by_o their_o defect_n to_o be_v strengthen_v in_o their_o error_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o case_n impossible_a case_n the_o two_o extreme_n some_o run_v into_o by_o assert_v a_o final_a fall_n or_o not_o fall_v from_o grace_n impossible_a as_o upon_o the_o one_o hand_n they_o err_v that_o affirm_v that_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o true_a and_o save_v grace_n can_v be_v fall_v from_o so_o do_v they_o err_v upon_o the_o other_o hand_n that_o deny_v any_o such_o stability_n to_o be_v attain_v from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o total_a and_o final_a apostasy_n and_o betwixt_o these_o two_o extreme_n lie_v the_o truth_n apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o which_o also_o we_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o by_o our_o own_o sensible_a experience_n and_o even_o as_o in_o that_o former_a controversy_n be_v observe_v so_o also_o in_o this_o the_o defence_n of_o truth_n will_v ready_o appear_v to_o such_o as_o serious_o weigh_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o argument_n upon_o both_o hand_n right_o apply_v will_v as_o to_o this_o hold_v good_a and_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v strong_a as_o they_o be_v respective_o urge_v against_o the_o two_o opposite_a false_a opinion_n be_v hereby_o easy_o solve_v by_o the_o establish_n of_o this_o truth_n for_o as_o the_o argument_n which_o these_o allege_v that_o affirm_v there_o can_v be_v no_o fall_v away_o may_v well_o be_v receive_v upon_o the_o one_o part_n as_o of_o those_o who_o have_v attain_v to_o this_o stability_n and_o establishment_n and_o their_o objection_n solve_v by_o this_o concession_n so_o upon_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o argument_n allege_v from_o scripture-testimony_n by_o those_o that_o affirm_v the_o possibility_n of_o fall_v away_o may_v well_o be_v receive_v of_o such_o as_o be_v not_o come_v to_o this_o establishment_n though_o have_v attain_v a_o measure_n of_o true_a grace_n thus_o than_o the_o contrary_a battering_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o miss_v the_o truth_n do_v concur_v the_o more_o strong_o to_o establish_v it_o while_o they_o be_v destroy_v each_o other_o but_o lest_o this_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o suffice_v to_o satisfy_v such_o as_o judge_v it_o always_o possible_a for_o the_o best_a of_o man_n before_o they_o die_v to_o fall_v away_o i_o shall_v add_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o some_o brief_a consideration_n from_o some_o few_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o v._o and_o first_o i_o free_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v good_a for_o all_o to_o be_v humble_a and_o in_o this_o respect_n not_o over-confident_a so_o as_o to_o lean_a to_o this_o all_o watchfulness_n and_o diligence_n be_v of_o indispensible_a necessity_n to_o all_o to_o foster_v themselves_o in_o iniquity_n or_o lie_v down_o in_o security_n as_o if_o they_o have_v attain_v this_o condition_n see_v watchfulness_n and_o diligence_n be_v of_o indispensible_a necessity_n to_o all_o mortal_a man_n so_o long_o as_o they_o breath_n in_o this_o world_n for_o god_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o constant_a practice_n of_o a_o christian_a that_o thereby_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o fit_a to_o serve_v he_o and_o the_o better_o arm_v against_o all_o the_o daily_a temptation_n of_o the_o enemy_n for_o since_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n there_o be_v no_o man_n while_o he_o sin_v and_o be_v subject_a thereunto_o but_o may_v lawful_o suppose_v himself_o capable_a of_o perish_v hence_o the_o apostle_n paul_n himself_o say_v 1_o cor._n 9.27_o but_o i_o keep_v under_o my_o body_n and_o bring_v it_o into_o subjection_n lest_o that_o by_o any_o mean_n when_o i_o have_v preach_v to_o other_o i_o myself_o shall_v be_v a_o castaway_n here_o the_o apostle_n suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o be_v a_o castaway_n and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v judge_v he_o be_v far_o more_o advance_v in_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o regeneration_n when_o he_o write_v that_o epistle_n than_o many_o who_o now_o a-days_o too_o presumptuous_o suppose_v they_o can_v fall_v away_o because_o they_o feel_v themselves_o to_o have_v attain_v some_o small_a degree_n of_o true_a grace_n but_o the_o apostle_n make_v use_v of_o this_o supposition_n or_o possibility_n of_o his_o be_v a_o castaway_n as_o i_o before_o observe_v as_o a_o inducement_n to_o he_o to_o be_v watchful_a i_o keep_v under_o my_o body_n lest_o etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o the_o same_o apostle_n at_o another_o time_n in_o the_o sense_n and_o feel_n of_o god_n holy_a power_n and_o in_o the_o dominion_n thereof_o find_v himself_o a_o conqueror_n therethrough_a over_o sin_n and_o his_o soul_n enemy_n make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o affirm_v rom._n 8.38_o for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n etc._n etc._n which_o clear_o show_v that_o he_o have_v attain_v a_o condition_n from_o which_o he_o know_v he_o can_v not_o fall_v away_o but_o second_o it_o appear_v such_o a_o away_o a_o a_o condition_n attainable_a in_o this_o life_n
to_o be_v understand_v spiritual_o can_v only_o partake_v of_o flesh_n as_o spirit_n of_o spirit_n as_o the_o body_n can_v feed_v upon_o spirit_n neither_o can_v the_o spirit_n feed_v upon_o flesh._n and_o that_o the_o flesh_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v appear_v further_a in_o that_o that_o which_o feed_v upon_o it_o shall_v never_o die_v but_o the_o body_n of_o all_o man_n once_o die_v yea_o it_o behove_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n himself_o to_o die_v that_o this_o body_n and_o spiritual_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a seed_n before_o speak_v of_o by_o we_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o nature_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o first_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v that_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n now_o this_o answer_n to_o that_o light_n and_o seed_n which_o be_v testify_v of_o joh._n 1._o to_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o life_n of_o man_n soul_n the_o spiritual_a light_n and_o seed_n be_v as_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a soul_n for_o that_o spiritual_a light_n and_o seed_n as_o it_o receive_v place_n in_o man_n heart_n and_o room_n to_o spring_v up_o there_o be_v as_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a and_o faint_a soul_n that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bury_v and_o dead_a in_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o world_n which_o receive_v life_n again_o and_o revive_v as_o it_o taste_v and_o partake_v of_o this_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o they_o that_o partake_v of_o it_o be_v say_v to_o come_v to_o christ_n neither_o can_v any_o have_v it_o but_o by_o come_v to_o he_o and_o believe_v in_o the_o appearance_n of_o his_o light_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o receive_v which_o and_o believe_v in_o it_o the_o participation_n of_o this_o body_n and_o bread_n be_v know_v and_o that_o christ_n understand_v the_o same_o thing_n here_o by_o his_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v understand_v joh._n 1._o by_o the_o light_n enlighten_v every_o man_n and_o the_o life_n etc._n etc._n appear_v for_o the_o light_n and_o life_n speak_v of_o joh._n 1._o be_v say_v to_o be_v christ_n he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n and_o the_o bread_n and_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n speak_v of_o in_o this_o 6_o of_o john_n be_v call_v christ_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v he_o again_o they_o that_o receive_v that_o light_n and_o life_n john_n 1.12_o obtain_v power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n so_o also_o here_o joh._n 6.35_o he_o that_o come_v unto_o this_o bread_n of_o life_n shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o be_v this_o bread_n shall_v never_o thirst._n so_o then_o distinguish_v christ_n outward_a and_o spiritual_a body_n distinguish_v as_o there_o be_v the_o outward_a visible_a body_n and_o temple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o take_v its_o origin_n from_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o there_o be_v also_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n by_o and_o through_o which_o he_o that_o be_v the_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o be_v and_o be_v god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o all_o age_n and_o whereby_o man_n in_o all_o age_n come_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o to_o have_v communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o god_n and_o christ._n of_o which_o body_n of_o christ_n christ._n the_o patriarch_n do_v eat_v of_o the_o body_n and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o both_o adam_n and_o seth_n and_o enoch_n and_o noah_n and_o abraham_n and_o moses_n and_o david_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n have_v not_o eat_v they_o have_v not_o have_v life_n in_o they_o nor_o can_v their_o inward_a man_n have_v be_v nourish_v now_o as_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o temple_n be_v call_v christ_n so_o be_v also_o this_o spiritual_a body_n no_o less_o proper_o and_o that_o long_a before_o that_o outward_a body_n be_v in_o be_v hence_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10.3_o 4_o that_o the_o father_n do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o do_v all_o drink_n the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v of_o that_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ._n this_o can_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o than_o of_o this_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v the_o save_a food_n of_o the_o righteous_a both_o before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n yet_o under_o the_o law_n it_o be_v veil_v and_o shadow_v and_o cover_v under_o divers_a type_n ceremony_n and_o observation_n yea_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o it_o be_v veil_v and_o hide_v in_o some_o respect_n under_o the_o outward_a temple_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o during_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o so_o that_o the_o jew_n can_v not_o understand_v christ_n preach_v about_o it_o while_o on_o earth_n and_o not_o the_o jew_n only_o but_o many_o of_o his_o disciple_n judge_v it_o a_o hard_a say_n murmur_v at_o it_o and_o many_o from_o that_o time_n go_v back_o from_o he_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o he_o 66._o joh._n 6.60_o 66._o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v many_o also_o at_o this_o day_n profess_v to_o be_v disciple_n of_o christ_n that_o do_v as_o little_a understand_v this_o matter_n as_o those_o do_v and_o be_v as_o apt_a to_o be_v offend_v and_o stumble_v at_o it_o while_o they_o be_v gaze_v and_o follow_v after_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o look_v not_o to_o that_o by_o which_o the_o saint_n be_v daily_o feed_v and_o nourish_v for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n do_v by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v up_o that_o body_n for_o a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o finish_v his_o testimony_n upon_o earth_n thereby_o in_o a_o most_o perfect_a example_n of_o patience_n resignation_n and_o holiness_n that_o all_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n so_o have_v he_o likewise_o pour_v forth_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n a_o measure_n of_o that_o divine_a light_n and_o seed_n body_n the_o divine_a light_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v the_o saint_n partaker_n of_o his_o body_n wherewith_o he_o be_v clothe_v that_o thereby_o reach_v unto_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o he_o may_v raise_v they_o up_o out_o of_o death_n and_o darkness_n by_o his_o life_n and_o light_n and_o they_o thereby_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therethrough_a come_v to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o the_o son_n quest._n §_o iii_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n man_n come_v to_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o to_o be_v feed_v by_o it_o answ._n i_o answer_v in_o the_o plain_a and_o express_v word_n of_o christ_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v he_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v never_o hunger_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v 55._o joh._n 6.35_o &_o 55._o and_o again_o for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o so_o whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o ask_v this_o question_n or_o read_v these_o line_n whether_o thou_o account_v thyself_o a_o believer_n or_o real_o feel_v by_o a_o certain_a and_o sad_a experience_n that_o thou_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o unbelief_n and_o find_v that_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o thou_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o reach_v it_o nor_o feed_v upon_o it_o yea_o though_o thou_o have_v often_o swallow_v down_o and_o taken-in_a that_o which_o the_o papist_n have_v persuade_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o real_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n call_v the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinian_o opinion_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n so_o call_v and_o have_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o though_o all_o thy_o sense_n tell_v thou_o the_o contrary_a or_o be_v a_o lutheran_n have_v take_v that_o bread_n in_o and_o with_o and_o under_o which_o the_o lutheran_n have_v assure_v thou_o that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v or_o be_v a_o calvinist_n have_v partake_v of_o that_o which_o the_o calvinist_n say_v though_o a_o figure_n only_o of_o the_o body_n give_v they_o that_o take_v it_o a_o real_a participation_n of_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o neither_o know_v how_o nor_o what_o way_n i_o say_v if_o for_o all_o this_o thou_o find_v thy_o soul_n yet_o barren_a yea_o hungry_a and_o ready_a to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o something_o thou_o long_v for_o know_v that_o that_o light_n that_o discover_v thy_o
of_o the_o week_n defer_v at_o troas_n the_o supper_n till_o midnight_n defer_v when_o the_o disciple_n come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n paul_n preach_v unto_o they_o ready_a to_o depart_v on_o the_o morrow_n and_o continue_v his_o speech_n until_o midnight_n here_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o any_o sacramental_a eat_v but_o only_o that_o paul_n take_v occasion_n from_o their_o be_v together_o to_o preach_v unto_o they_o and_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v a_o supper_n they_o intend_v not_o a_o morning-bit_n of_o bread_n and_o sup_n of_o wine_n else_o it_o be_v not_o very_o probable_a that_o paul_n will_v from_o the_o morning_n have_v preach_v until_o midnight_n but_o the_o 11_o the_o verse_n put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o dispute_n which_o be_v thus_o when_o he_o therefore_o be_v come_v up_o again_o and_o have_v break_v bread_n and_o eat_v and_o talk_v a_o long_a while_n even_o till_o break_v of_o day_n so_o he_o depart_v this_o show_v that_o the_o break_v of_o bread_n be_v defer_v till_o that_o time_n for_o those_o word_n and_o when_o he_o have_v break_v bread_n and_o eat_v do_v show_n that_o it_o have_v a_o relation_n to_o the_o break_v of_o bread_n aforementioned_a and_o that_o that_o be_v the_o time_n he_o do_v it_o second_o these_o word_n join_v together_o and_o when_o he_o have_v break_v bread_n and_o eat_v and_o talk_v show_v it_o be_v no_o religious_a act_n of_o worship_n body_n they_o only_o do_v eat_v for_o refresh_v the_o body_n but_o only_o a_o eat_v for_o bodily_a refreshment_n for_o which_o the_o christian_n use_v to_o meet_v together_o some_o time_n and_o do_v it_o in_o god_n fear_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n do_v notwithstanding_o difference_n it_o from_o the_o eat_v or_o feast_v of_o profane_a person_n and_o this_o by_o some_o be_v call_v a_o love-feast_n love-feast_n by_o some_o call_v a_o love-feast_n or_o a_o be_v together_o not_o mere_o to_o feed_v their_o belly_n or_o for_o outward_a end_n but_o to_o take_v thence_o occasion_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v together_o in_o the_o dread_a and_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o his_o people_n which_o custom_n we_o shall_v not_o condemn_v but_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o all_o the_o act_n there_o be_v no_o other_o nor_o further_a mention_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o if_o that_o ceremony_n have_v be_v some_o solemn_a sacrifice_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o or_o such_o a_o special_a sacrament_n as_o other_o plead_v it_o to_o be_v it_o be_v strange_a that_o that_o history_n that_o in_o many_o lesser_a thing_n give_v a_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o christian_n behaviour_n shall_v have_v be_v so_o silent_a in_o the_o matter_n only_o we_o find_v that_o they_o use_v sometime_o to_o meet_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n and_o eat_v now_o as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n begin_v by_o degree_n to_o depart_v from_o that_o primitive_a purity_n and_o simplicity_n so_o as_o to_o accumulate_v superstitious_a tradition_n purity_n the_o christian_n begin_v by_o degree_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o primitive_a purity_n and_o vitiate_v the_o innocent_a practice_n of_o their_o predecessor_n by_o the_o intermix_v either_o of_o jewish_a or_o heathenish_a rite_n so_o also_o in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o very_o early_a abuse_n begin_v to_o creep_v in_o among_o christian_n so_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o reform_v they_o and_o reprove_v they_o therefore_o as_o he_o do_v at_o large_a 1_o cor._n 11._o from_o ver_fw-la 17._o to_o the_o end_n explain_v 1_o cor._n 11.17_o concern_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o call_v explain_v which_o place_n we_o shall_v particular_o examine_v because_o our_o adversary_n lay_v the_o chief_a stress_n of_o their_o matter_n upon_o it_o and_o we_o shall_v see_v whether_o it_o will_v infer_v any_o more_o than_o we_o have_v above_o grant_v 1_o st_o because_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o use_v that_o practice_n in_o a_o superstitious_a mind_n beyond_o the_o true_a use_n of_o it_o as_o to_o make_v of_o it_o some_o mystical_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o tell_v they_o v._o 20._o that_o their_o come_v together_o into_o one_o place_n be_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v not_o the_o right_a manner_n to_o eat_v but_o this_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n because_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v spiritual_a and_o a_o mystery_n 2_o lie_n he_o blame_v they_o in_o that_o they_o come_v together_o for_o the_o worse_o and_o not_o for_o the_o better_a the_o reason_n he_o give_v of_o this_o be_v v._o 21._o for_o in_o eat_v every_o one_o have_v take_v before_o his_o own_o supper_n and_o one_o be_v hungry_a and_o another_o be_v drunken_a here_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o apostle_n condemn_v they_o for_o that_o christian_n why_o the_o custom_n of_o sup_v in_o common_a be_v use_v among_o christian_n because_o this_o custom_n of_o sup_v in_o general_n be_v use_v among_o christian_n for_o to_o increase_v their_o love_n and_o as_o a_o memorial_n of_o christ_n sup_v with_o the_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v so_o vitiate_v it_o to_o eat_v it_o apart_o and_o to_o come_v full_a who_o have_v abundance_n and_o hungry_a who_o have_v little_a at_o home_n whereby_o the_o very_a use_n and_o end_v of_o this_o practice_n be_v lose_v and_o pervert_v and_o therefore_o he_o blame_v they_o that_o they_o do_v not_o either_o eat_v this_o in_o common_a at_o home_n or_o reserve_v their_o eat_v till_o they_o come_v all_o together_o to_o the_o public_a assembly_n this_o appear_v plain_o by_o the_o follow_a verse_n 22._o have_v you_o not_o house_n to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v in_o or_o despise_v you_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o shame_v they_o that_o have_v not_o where_o he_o blame_v they_o for_o their_o irregular_a practice_n herein_o in_o that_o they_o despise_v to_o eat_v orderly_o or_o reserve_v their_o eat_v to_o the_o public_a assembly_n and_o so_o shame_v such_o as_o not_o have_v house_n nor_o fullness_n at_o home_n come_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o common_a table_n who_o be_v hungry_a thereby_o be_v ashamed_a when_o they_o observe_v other_o come_v thither_o full_a and_o drunken_a those_o that_o without_o prejudice_n will_v look_v to_o the_o place_n will_v see_v this_o must_v have_v be_v the_o case_n among_o the_o corinthian_n for_o suppose_v the_o use_n of_o this_o to_o have_v be_v then_o as_o now_o use_v either_o by_o papist_n lutheran_n or_o calvinist_n it_o be_v hard_o make_v sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n or_o indeed_o to_o conceive_v what_o be_v the_o abuse_v the_o corinthian_n commit_v in_o this_o thing_n have_v thus_o observe_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v above_o because_o this_o custom_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v together_o some_o time_n custom_n tee_fw-mi rise_v of_o that_o custom_n have_v its_o rise_n from_o christ_n act_n with_o the_o apostle_n the_o night_n he_o be_v betray_v therefore_o the_o apostle_n proceed_v ver_fw-la 23._o to_o give_v they_o a_o account_n of_o that_o for_o i_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o also_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n etc._n etc._n those_o that_o understand_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o narration_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o a_o command_n can_v but_o see_v if_o they_o will_v that_o there_o be_v no_o command_n in_o this_o place_n but_o only_o a_o account_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o say_v not_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o as_o he_o take_v bread_n so_o i_o shall_v command_v it_o to_o you_o to_o do_v so_o also_o there_o be_v nothing_o like_o this_o in_o the_o place_n yea_o on_o the_o contrary_a for_o 25._o where_o he_o repeat_v christ_n imperative_a word_n to_o his_o apostle_n he_o place_v they_o so_o as_o they_o import_v no_o command_n this_o do_v you_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o drink_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o supper_n that_o as_o often_o import_v no_o command_n of_o this_o supper_n and_o then_o he_o add_v for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o do_v show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v but_o these_o word_n as_o often_o import_v no_o more_o a_o command_n than_o to_o say_v as_o often_o as_o thou_o go_v to_o rome_n see_v the_o capitol_n will_v infer_v a_o command_n to_o i_o to_o go_v thither_o but_o whereas_o they_o urge_v the_o last_o word_n you_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v object_n object_n insinuate_a that_o this_o import_v a_o necessary_a continuance_n of_o that_o ceremony_n until_o christ_n come_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o judgement_n answ._n i_o answer_v they_o take_v two_o of_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o controversy_n here_o for_o grant_v without_o proof_n
and_o profane_a be_v not_o come_v to_o this_o place_n be_v in_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v curse_a and_o their_o plough_v as_o well_o as_o pray_v be_v sin_n now_o if_o any_o will_v plead_v that_o for_o relaxation_n of_o mind_n there_o may_v be_v a_o liberty_n allow_v beyond_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o absolute_a need_n to_o the_o sustenance_n of_o the_o outward_a man_n i_o shall_v not_o much_o contend_v against_o it_o provide_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o such_o as_o be_v whole_o superfluous_a or_o in_o their_o proper_a nature_n and_o tendency_n lead_v the_o mind_n into_o lust_n vanity_n and_o wantonness_n as_o be_v chief_o contrive_v and_o frame_v for_o that_o end_n or_o general_o experience_v to_o produce_v these_o effect_n or_o be_v the_o common_a engine_n of_o such_o as_o be_v so_o mind_v to_o feed_v one_o another_o therein_o and_o to_o propagate_v their_o wickedness_n to_o the_o empoison_v of_o other_o see_v there_o be_v other_o innocent_a divertisement_n which_o may_v sufficient_o serve_v for_o relaxation_n to_o the_o mind_n such_o as_o for_o friend_n to_o visit_v one_o another_o divertisement_n lawful_a divertisement_n to_o hear_v or_o read_v history_n to_o speak_v sober_o of_o the_o present_a or_o past_a transaction_n to_o follow_v after_o gardnering_n to_o use_v geometrical_a and_o mathematical_a experiment_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n in_o all_o which_o thing_n we_o be_v not_o so_o to_o forget_v god_n in_o who_o we_o both_o live_v and_o be_v move_v act_v 10.26_o as_o not_o to_o have_v always_o some_o secret_n reserve_v to_o he_o and_o sense_n of_o his_o fear_n and_o presence_n which_o also_o frequent_o exert_v itself_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o thing_n by_o some_o short_a aspiration_n and_o breathe_n and_o that_o this_o may_v neither_o seem_v strange_a nor_o troublesome_a i_o shall_v clear_v it_o by_o one_o manifest_a instance_n answerable_a to_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o men._n it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n than_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n for_o we_o ought_v to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o thing_n now_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o man_n that_o be_v take_v with_o love_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o a_o woman_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n if_o it_o have_v take_v deep_a place_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o possess_v the_o mind_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o the_o man_n so_o in_o love_n to_o drive_v out_o of_o his_o mind_n the_o person_n or_o thing_n so_o love_v yea_o in_o his_o eat_v drink_v and_o sleep_v his_o mind_n will_v always_o have_v a_o tendency_n that_o way_n and_o in_o business_n or_o recreation_n however_o intent_n he_o be_v in_o it_o there_o will_v but_o a_o very_a short_a time_n be_v permit_v to_o pass_v but_o the_o mind_n will_v let_v some_o ejaculation_n forth_o towards_o its_o belove_a offence_n the_o love_n towards_o its_o beloved_a shun_v its_o offence_n and_o albeit_o such_o a_o one_o must_v be_v conversant_a in_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o care_n of_o this_o body_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n call_v for_o yet_o will_v he_o avoid_v as_o death_n itself_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o may_v offend_v the_o party_n so_o belove_v or_o cross_v his_o design_n in_o obtain_v the_o thing_n so_o earnest_o desire_v though_o there_o may_v be_v some_o small_a use_n in_o they_o the_o great_a design_n which_o be_v chief_o in_o his_o eye_n will_v so_o balance_v he_o that_o he_o will_v easy_o look_v over_o and_o dispense_v with_o such_o petty_a necessity_n rather_o than_o endanger_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o great_a by_o they_o now_o that_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v thus_o in_o love_n with_o god_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v none_o will_v deny_v and_o the_o thing_n be_v apparent_a from_o these_o scripture_n matth._n 6.20_o but_o lay_v up_o for_o yourselves_o treasure_n in_o heaven_n col._n 3.2_o set_a your_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o experience_n and_o attainment_n of_o some_o the_o scripture_n also_o declare_v psal._n 63.1.84_o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o god_n sport_n play_n draw_v man_n from_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o again_o that_o these_o game_n sport_n play_n dance_a comedy_n etc._n etc._n do_v natural_o tend_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o god_n fear_n to_o make_v they_o forget_v heaven_n death_n and_o judgement_n to_o foster_v lust_n vanity_n and_o wantonness_n and_o therefore_o be_v most_o love_v as_o well_o as_o use_v by_o such_o kind_n of_o person_n experience_v abundant_o show_v and_o the_o most-serious_a and_o conscientious_a among_o all_o will_n scarce_o deny_v which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o the_o application_n be_v easy_a §_o x._o five_o the_o use_n of_o swear_v be_v to_o be_v consider_v which_o be_v so_o frequent_o practise_v almost_o among_o all_o christian_n not_o only_o profane_a oath_n among_o the_o profane_a in_o their_o common_a discourse_n whereby_o the_o most●holy_a name_n of_o god_n be_v in_o a_o horrible_a manner_n daily_o blaspheme_v but_o also_o solemn_a oath_n with_o those_o that_o have_v some_o show_n of_o piety_n whereof_o the_o most_o part_n do_v defend_v swear_v before_o the_o magistrate_n with_o so_o great_a zeal_n that_o not_o only_o they_o be_v ready_a themselves_o to_o do_v it_o upon_o every_o occasion_n but_o also_o stir_v up_o the_o magistrate_n to_o persecute_v those_o who_o out_o of_o obedience_n to_o christ_n their_o lord_n and_o master_n judge_v it_o unlawful_a to_o swear_v upon_o which_o account_v not_o a_o few_o have_v suffer_v imprisonment_n and_o the_o spoil_n of_o their_o good_n but_o consider_v these_o clear_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n forbid_v all_o swear_v be_v forbid_v matth._n 5.33_o 34._o again_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o have_v be_v say_v by_o they_o of_o old_a time_n thou_o shall_v not_o forswear_v thyself_o but_o shall_v perform_v unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o oath_n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o swear_v not_o at_o all_o neither_o by_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n but_o let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o yea_o nay_o nay_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o these_o come_v of_o evil_a as_o also_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n 5.12_o but_o above_o all_o thing_n my_o brethren_n swear_v not_o neither_o by_o heaven_n neither_o by_o the_o earth_n neither_o by_o any_o other_o oath_n but_o let_v your_o yea_o be_fw-mi yea_o and_o your_o nay_o nay_o lest_o you_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n i_o say_v consider_v these_o clear_a word_n it_o be_v admirable_a how_o any_o one_o that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v pronounce_v any_o oath_n with_o a_o quiet_a conscience_n far_o less_o to_o persecute_v other_o christian_n that_o dare_v not_o swear_v because_o of_o their_o master_n christ_n authority_n for_o do_v any_o one_o purpose_n serious_o and_o in_o the_o most_o rigid_a manner_n to_o forbid_v any_o thing_n comprehend_v under_o any_o general_n can_v they_o use_v a_o more_o full_a and_o general_a prohibition_n and_o that_o without_o any_o exception_n i_o think_v not_o for_o christ_n first_o propose_v it_o to_o we_o negative_o swear_v not_o at_o all_o neither_o by_o heaven_n nor_o by_o the_o earth_n nor_o by_o jerusalem_n nor_o by_o thy_o head_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o swear_v not_o by_o heaven_n nor_o by_o earth_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o oath_n second_o he_o press_v it_o affirmative_o but_o let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o yea_o and_o nay_o nay_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o these_o come_v of_o evil_a and_o say_v james_n lest_o you_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n which_o word_n both_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o do_v make_v such_o a_o full_a prohibition_n and_o so_o free_a of_o all_o exception_n that_o it_o be_v strange_a exception_n without_o exception_n how_o man_n that_o boast_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o life_n can_v counterfeit_v any_o exception_n certain_o reason_n ought_v to_o teach_v every_o one_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o make_v void_a a_o general_a prohibition_n come_v from_o god_n by_o such_o opposition_n unless_o the_o exception_n be_v as_o clear_o and_o evident_o express_v as_o the_o prohibition_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o endeavour_v to_o confirm_v it_o by_o consequence_n and_o probability_n which_o be_v obscure_a and_o uncertain_a and_o not_o sufficient_a to_o bring_v quiet_a to_o the_o conscience_n for_o if_o they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v therefore_o a_o exception_n and_o limitation_n in_o the_o word_n because_o there_o be_v find_v exception_n in_o the_o other_o general_a prohibition_n of_o this_o five_o chapter_n as_o in_o the_o forbid_v of_o divorcement_n where_o christ_n say_v it_o have_v be_v say_v whosoever_o shall_v put_v away_o his_o wife_n let_v he_o give_v she_o a_o write_n of_o divorcement_n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v put_v away_o his_o
all_o evil_a hence_o they_o say_v we_o vilify_v the_o scripture_n and_o set_v up_o our_o own_o imagination_n above_o they_o because_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o talk_v or_o believe_v of_o christ_n outward_a life_n suffering_n death_n and_o resurrection_n no_o more_o than_o the_o jew_n cry_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v serve_v their_o turn_n or_o justify_v they_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o that_o they_o must_v know_v christ_n in_o they_o who_o they_o have_v crucify_v to_o be_v raise_v and_o to_o justify_v they_o and_o redeem_v they_o from_o their_o iniquity_n hence_o they_o say_v we_o deny_v the_o life_n death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n justification_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o he_o because_o we_o tell_v they_o while_o they_o be_v talk_v and_o determine_v about_o the_o resurrection_n that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o know_v the_o just_a one_o who_o they_o have_v slay_v raise_v in_o themselves_o and_o to_o be_v sure_a they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o that_o if_o this_o be_v they_o will_v be_v the_o more_o capable_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o second_o hence_o they_o say_v that_o we_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n because_o when_o we_o hear_v they_o talk_v foolish_o of_o heaven_n and_o hell_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n we_o exhort_v they_o to_o come_v out_o of_o that_o hellish_a condition_n they_o be_v in_o and_o come_v down_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n and_o follow_v it_o that_o so_o they_o may_v come_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n hence_o they_o malicious_o say_v that_o we_o deny_v any_o heaven_n or_o hell_n but_o that_o which_o be_v within_o we_o and_o that_o we_o deny_v any_o general_n judgement_n which_o slander_n the_o lord_n know_v be_v foul_o cast_v upon_o we_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v for_o this_o end_n and_o gather_v we_o that_o by_o we_o he_o may_v confound_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o bring_v to_o nought_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prudent_a and_o may_v in_o and_o by_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o power_n in_o a_o despise_a people_n that_o no_o flesh_n may_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n pull_v down_o that_o dead_a dark_a corrupt_a image_n and_o mere_a shadow_n and_o shell_n of_o christianity_n wherewith_o antichrist_n have_v deceive_v the_o nation_n for_o which_o end_n he_o have_v call_v we_o to_o be_v a_o first-fruit_n of_o those_o that_o serve_v he_o and_o worship_n he_o no_o more_o in_o the_o oldness_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o in_o the_o newness_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o though_o we_o be_v few_o in_o number_n in_o respect_n of_o other_o and_o weak_a as_o to_o outward_a strength_n which_o we_o also_o altogether_o reject_v and_o foolish_a if_o compare_v with_o the_o wise_a one_o of_o this_o world_n yet_o as_o god_n have_v prosper_v we_o notwithstanding_o much_o opposition_n so_o will_v he_o yet_o do_v that_o neither_o the_o art_n wisdom_n nor_o violence_n of_o man_n or_o devil_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o quench_v that_o little_a spark_n that_o have_v appear_v but_o it_o shall_v grow_v to_o the_o consume_v of_o whatsoever_o shall_v stand_v up_o to_o oppose_v it_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o yea_o he_o that_o have_v arisen_a in_o a_o small_a remnant_n shall_v arise_v and_o go_v on_o by_o the_o same_o arm_n of_o power_n in_o his_o spiritual_a manifestation_n until_o he_o have_v conquer_a all_o his_o enemy_n until_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o he_o that_o have_v begin_v this_o work_n not_o among_o the_o rich_a or_o great_a one_o but_o among_o the_o poor_a and_o small_a and_o have_v reveal_v it_o not_o to_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a but_o unto_o the_o poor_a unto_o babe_n and_o suckling_n even_o to_o he_o the_o only-wise_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n be_v honour_n glory_n thanksgiving_n and_o renown_n from_o henceforth_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n haleluia_o a_o true_a and_o faithful_a account_n of_o the_o most_o material_a passage_n of_o a_o dispute_n betwixt_o some_o student_n of_o divinity_n so_o call_v of_o the_o university_n of_o aberdeen_n and_o the_o people_z call_v quaker_n hold_v in_o aberdeen_n in_o scotland_n in_o alexander_n harper_n his_o close_n or_o yard_n before_o some_o hundred_o of_o witness_n upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o second_o month_n call_v april_n 1675._o there_o be_v opponent_n john_n lesly_n mast._n of_o art_n alexander_n shirreff_a mast._n of_o art_n paul_n jelly_n mast._n of_o art_n and_o defendant_n upon_o the_o quaker_n part_n robert_n barclay_n and_o george_n keith_n praeses_fw-la for_o moderate_v the_o meet_v choose_v by_o they_o andrew_z thomson_n advocate_n and_o by_o the_o quaker_n alexander_n skein_n sometime_o a_o magistrate_n of_o the_o city_n publish_a for_o prevent_a misreport_n by_o alexander_n skein_n john_n skein_n alexander_n harper_n thomas_n merser_n and_o john_n cowie_n to_o which_o be_v add_v robert_n barclay_n offer_v to_o the_o preacher_n of_o aberdeen_n renew_a and_o reinforce_v act_n 4.27_o for_o of_o a_o truth_n against_o thy_o holy_a child_n jesus_n who_o thou_o have_v anoint_v both_o herod_n and_o pontius_n pilate_n with_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v gather_v together_o london_n print_v for_o tho._n northcott_n 1691._o the_o epistle_n year_n 1675_o friendly_a reader_n forasmuch_o as_o our_o opposer_n threaten_v they_o will_v print_v a_o account_n of_o the_o debate_n and_o boast_v of_o a_o victory_n we_o think_v it_o our_o concernment_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v sake_n and_o to_o undeceive_v those_o that_o may_v be_v abuse_v by_o such_o report_n to_o give_v this_o true_a and_o faithful_a account_n of_o what_o past_a which_o we_o be_v confident_a all_o the_o impartial_a and_o attentive_a auditor_n will_v affirm_v to_o be_v a_o true_a account_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o one_o argument_n omit_v that_o we_o can_v remember_v of_o or_o any_o thing_n add_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n speak_v extrinsic_a from_o the_o matter_n and_o sometime_o confuse_o two_o or_o three_o of_o our_o opposer_n speak_v often_o at_o once_o and_o also_o some_o other_o that_o be_v not_o concern_v as_o particular_o one_o brown_a the_o bishop_n chaplain_n who_o though_o he_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o article_n and_o so_o be_v exclude_v from_o speak_v do_v often_o most_o impertinent_o interrupt_v and_o intrude_v himself_o but_o these_o be_v only_o transient_a and_o no_o argument_n insist_v on_o we_o have_v not_o insert_v they_o study_v to_o keep_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o we_o do_v faithful_o declare_v that_o we_o have_v herein_o deal_v impartial_o according_a to_o our_o memory_n as_o we_o hope_v such_o serious_a auditor_n as_o may_v read_v this_o will_v acknowledge_v so_o leave_v you_o to_o the_o perusal_n hereof_o we_o rest_v your_o soul_n wellwisher_n alexander_n skein_n john_n skein_n thomas_n mercer_n john_n cowie_n a_o account_n of_o a_o dispute_n at_o aberdeen_n in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o article_n be_v read_v which_o be_v as_o follow_v i._o it_o be_v hereby_o declare_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v a_o private_a conference_n betwixt_o the_o student_n of_o divinity_n so_o call_v of_o the_o college_n of_o aberdeen_n and_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n as_o a_o fulfil_n of_o any_o challenge_n wherein_o these_o student_n may_v be_v include_v within_o the_o thesis_n set_v forth_o by_o robert_n barclay_n or_o may_v have_v receive_v from_o any_o of_o that_o people_n but_o abstract_n from_o the_o public_a challenge_n give_v to_o the_o preacher_n in_o general_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o english_a thesis_n because_o it_o be_v offer_v with_o particular_a condition_n of_o have_v the_o public_a place_n to_o dispute_v in_o before_o the_o auditory_n before_o who_o they_o conceive_v they_o have_v be_v misrepresent_v ii_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o when_o any_o of_o either_o party_n be_v speak_v if_o any_o of_o their_o company_n offer_v to_o speak_v he_o that_o be_v speak_v be_v to_o be_v silent_a but_o if_o two_o of_o a_o party_n speak_v at_o once_o he_o that_o be_v see_v to_o obtrude_v himself_o shall_v be_v judge_v impertinent_a and_o exclude_v thereby_o from_o far_a access_n iii_o that_o each_o speaker_n on_o any_o of_o the_o side_n have_v full_a liberty_n and_o time_n to_o speak_v without_o interruption_n of_o the_o contrary_a party_n and_o that_o he_o that_o interrupt_v shall_v be_v debar_v from_o far_a speak_v iv_o that_o each_o side_n abstain_v from_o school-term_n and_o distinction_n as_o much_o as_o possible_a but_o if_o any_o use_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v open_v to_o the_o people_n in_o plain_a english_a so_o that_o any_o
outward_a miracle_n discuss_v but_o further_a these_o stout_a and_o hardy_a warrior_n can_v have_v use_v these_o same_o argument_n against_o the_o prophet_n when_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n for_o they_o can_v have_v allege_v the_o miracle_n be_v not_o true_a miracle_n but_o false_a and_o such_o as_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o if_o any_o can_v produce_v miracle_n now_o as_o there_o have_v be_v they_o will_v no_o more_o be_v believe_v than_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n believe_v the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o they_o still_o look_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v deceiver_n it_o be_v clear_a from_o scripture_n that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v permit_v to_o work_v false_a miracle_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v so_o counterfeit_v the_o true_a that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o discern_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o without_o god_n immediate_a direction_n and_o teach_v and_o therefore_o the_o preach_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n accompany_v with_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v a_o better_a evidence_n of_o a_o true_a prophet_n than_o all_o outward_a miracle_n whatsoever_o doctrine_n the_o fruit_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n as_o christ_n say_v by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o he_o do_v not_o say_v by_o their_o miracle_n but_o by_o their_o fruit_n now_o we_o be_v most_o willing_a to_o be_v try_v by_o this_o rule_n if_o both_o our_o doctrine_n and_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o conversation_n be_v not_o answerable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n then_o let_v they_o say_v we_o have_v not_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o they_o but_o if_o they_o can_v make_v out_o this_o they_o but_o fight_v as_o man_n beat_v the_o air._n pag._n 80._o they_o argue_v that_o there_o be_v no_o substantial_a live_a principle_n in_o man_n that_o be_v the_o good_a seed_n because_o then_o the_o evil_a seed_n or_o principle_n shall_v also_o be_v substantial_a but_o this_o be_v absurd_a therefore_o that_o this_o be_v absurd_a they_o argue_v for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v create_v by_o god_n and_o so_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o author_n of_o evil_a and_o sin_n or_o it_o shall_v be_v uncreated_a and_o consequent_o god_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v the_o same_o argument_n militate_v as_o much_o and_o rather_o more_o against_o their_o own_o principle_n for_o see_v they_o hold_v sin_n to_o be_v somewhat_o whether_o a_o substance_n or_o a_o accident_n be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o the_o argument_n we_o argue_v by_o a_o retortion_n against_o themselves_o either_o it_o be_v create_v or_o uncreated_a and_o so_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n will_v follow_v but_o to_o answer_v direct_o we_o say_v sin_n consider_v in_o its_o formal_a reason_n be_v rather_o a_o privation_n than_o any_o real_a be_v as_o blindness_n or_o lameness_n in_o a_o man_n body_n or_o corruption_n in_o wine_n or_o any_o other_o liquor_n but_o if_o they_o inquire_v about_o the_o subject_a of_o this_o privation_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o substance_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v subject_a sin_n a_o privation_n in_o the_o subject_a and_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o scripture_n testimony_n that_o as_o christ_n rule_v in_o the_o saint_n so_o the_o devil_n rule_v in_o the_o wicked_a and_o be_v in_o they_o and_o as_o god_n have_v his_o seed_n and_o birth_n in_o the_o saint_n so_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o seed_n and_o birth_n in_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n nature_n but_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v further_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o substance_n we_o answer_v first_o with_o inquire_v at_o they_o another_o question_n and_o retort_a the_o argument_n upon_o they_o whether_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o substance_n yea_o or_o nay_o if_o yea_o either_o he_o be_v create_v or_o uncreated_a if_o create_v than_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o devil_n if_o uncreated_a than_o he_o shall_v be_v god_n their_o own_o consequence_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n but_o 2._o the_o true_a answer_n to_o both_o be_v that_o he_o who_o be_v now_o the_o devil_n be_v create_v of_o god_n a_o good_a angel_n but_o by_o his_o own_o voluntary_a fall_n he_o have_v reduce_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o devil_n not_o by_o any_o real_a creation_n but_o by_o a_o degeneration_n and_o as_o be_v the_o devil_n himself_o so_o be_v his_o seed_n a_o corrupt_a degenerate_v principle_n from_o what_o it_o be_v original_o before_o sin_n be_v but_o if_o we_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o devil_n distinct_o sin_n the_o seed_n of_o sin_n as_o distinct_a from_o himself_o we_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v any_o percipient_a principle_n that_o see_v or_o know_v etc._n etc._n for_o it_o be_v rather_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n than_o of_o a_o percipient_a intelligent_a spirit_n and_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o a_o body_n to_o wit_n the_o body_n of_o death_n but_o whether_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o substance_n or_o not_o the_o student_n argument_n be_v altogether_o impertinent_a to_o argue_v that_o because_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v a_o substantial_a live_a principle_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o evil_a principle_n or_o seed_n shall_v also_o be_v substantial_a live_a etc._n etc._n for_o the_o same_o reason_n we_o deny_v this_o consequence_n for_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n whereby_o to_o prove_v the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o if_o they_o think_v to_o argue_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n they_o think_v foolish_o for_o it_o will_v as_o much_o follow_v that_o because_o a_o man_n be_v a_o substance_n who_o see_v and_o hear_v etc._n etc._n that_o therefore_o a_o man_n blindness_n and_o deafness_n and_o lameness_n be_v also_o substance_n and_o that_o blindness_n see_v deafness_n hear_v lameness_n walk_v do_v they_o not_o know_v the_o maxim_n in_o logic_n that_o tell_v they_o substantia_fw-la substantiae_fw-la proprie_fw-la non_fw-la contrariatur_fw-la i_o e._n one_o substance_n proper_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o another_o but_o last_o of_o all_o we_o may_v more_o just_o retort_v this_o blasphemous_a consequence_n upon_o many_o of_o their_o own_o church_n who_o hold_v that_o god_n stir_v up_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o wicked_a man_n unto_o all_o their_o wicked_a action_n by_o a_o irresistible_a motion_n or_o quality_n which_o he_o infuse_v into_o they_o common_o call_v praedeterminatio_fw-la physica_fw-la be_v not_o this_o to_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n call_v original_a sin_n so_o call_v as_o also_o many_o of_o they_o teach_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v a_o positive_a quality_n infuse_v into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n at_o their_o creation_n concern_v which_o positive_a quality_n we_o thus_o argue_v either_o it_o be_v create_v or_o uncreated_a etc._n etc._n and_o so_o the_o inconvenience_n of_o their_o argument_n will_v fall_v much_o more_o upon_o their_o own_o head_n for_o they_o can_v allege_v that_o this_o positive_a quality_n at_o its_o first_o creation_n be_v first_o good_a and_o afterward_o become_v change_v into_o evil_n because_o no_o quality_n can_v admit_v any_o such_o transmutation_n as_o for_o example_n whiteness_n can_v never_o become_v blackness_n nor_o sweetness_n bitterness_n nor_o straightness_n crookedness_n although_o a_o substance_n that_o be_v white_a may_v lose_v its_o whiteness_n and_o may_v become_v black_a and_o that_o which_o be_v sweet_a may_v become_v bitter_a and_o that_o which_o be_v straight_o become_v crooked_a in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o their_o second_o argument_n they_o bring_v their_o matter_n to_o this_o issue_n that_o g._n k._n hold_v the_o seed_n itself_o to_o be_v contradistinct_a from_o the_o manifestation_n because_o the_o manifestation_n be_v in_o the_o seed_n but_o we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n answer_v their_o argument_n about_o manifestation_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n answer_v do_v not_o they_o say_v that_o the_o manifestation_n of_o god_n will_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o god_n will_n that_o g._n k._n call_v the_o seed_n both_o a_o substance_n and_o a_o manifestation_n be_v as_o reasonable_a as_o to_o say_v there_o be_v outward_a manifestation_n of_o god_n goodness_n power_n and_o wisdom_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o yet_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v the_o very_a outward_a manifestation_n themselves_o be_v not_o our_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o clothing_n natural_a and_o outward_a manifestation_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o and_o be_v not_o these_o thing_n substance_n and_o do_v not_o god_n manifest_v his_o goodness_n also_o in_o they_o what_o blind_a reason_n be_v these_o which_o those_o poor_a blind_a man_n bring_v forth_o against_o the_o truth_n again_o they_o argue_v that_o this_o manifestation_n which_o we_o say_v be_v a_o substance_n depend_v not_o a_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la can_v exist_v without_o a_o subject_a nay_o not_o without_o the_o understanding_n to_o which_o it_o be_v make_v
no_o body_n of_o christ_n carnal_a but_o believe_v that_o that_o body_n which_o christ_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n which_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o david_n in_o which_o christ_n walk_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v crucify_a do_v arise_v the_o three_o day_n be_v glorify_v and_o remain_v in_o heaven_n wherein_o the_o centre_n of_o his_o most_o glorious_a soul_n remain_v for_o ever_o and_o let_v he_o show_v if_o he_o can_v how_o this_o be_v a_o deny_v of_o the_o christ_n of_o god_n or_o overturning_a of_o christianity_n he_o proceed_v pag._n 489._o at_o a_o most_o violent_a strain_n of_o rail_a upon_o the_o supposition_n of_o his_o old_a calumny_n and_o here_o that_o it_o may_v be_v complete_a devil_n j._n b._n make_v a_o preach_a to_o the_o devil_n he_o make_v a_o preach_n to_o the_o devil_n for_o which_o blasphemous_a abuse_n i_o wish_v hearty_o the_o lord_n forgive_v he_o that_o these_o devil_n to_o who_o he_o preach_v be_v not_o permit_v to_o give_v he_o his_o reward_n for_o his_o sermon_n but_o see_v he_o blush_v not_o to_o do_v this_o in_o print_n i_o shall_v not_o think_v the_o many_o gross_a abuse_n i_o have_v hear_v to_o have_v be_v utter_v by_o presbyterian_a preacher_n so_o incredible_a as_o i_o have_v be_v apt_a to_o do_v especial_o that_o which_o i_o have_v be_v inform_v of_o of_o late_a of_o one_o they_o a_o presbyterian_a preacher_n pray_v to_o the_o devil_n to_o take_v the_o bishop_n and_o curate_n to_o he_o that_o they_o may_v be_v quit_v of_o they_o who_o at_o a_o conventicle_n in_o the_o south_n near_o legerwood_n not_o far_o from_o lauther_n make_v a_o digression_n in_o his_o prayer_n to_o the_o devil_n say_v o_o devil_n thou_o have_v trouble_v we_o much_o with_o the_o bishop_n and_o curate_n we_o beseech_v thou_o devil_n take_v they_o to_o thou_o and_o make_v we_o quit_v of_o they_o this_o prayer_n suit_n with_o john_n brown_n preach_n and_o indeed_o the_o presbyterian_o will_v need_v a_o new_a directory_n for_o the_o old_a one_o by_o which_o they_o be_v instruct_v to_o preach_v to_o man_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n will_v not_o serve_v for_o this_o new_a ministry_n by_o which_o they_o begin_v to_o preach_v and_o pray_v to_o devil_n and_o of_o the_o like_a strain_n be_v his_o say_n after_o much_o rail_a pag._n 490._o that_o if_o the_o quaker_n write_v comment_n on_o paul_n epistle_n it_o must_v be_v of_o paulus_n paganizan_n this_o sort_n of_o stuff_n be_v enough_o to_o give_v all_o sober_a christian_n a_o disgust_n of_o this_o man_n write_n in_o this_o page_n after_o some_o quibble_n about_o relation_n he_o come_v pag._n 491._o n._n 11._o to_o affirm_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o relation_n which_o be_v neither_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n nor_o from_o some_o divine_a precept_n such_o as_o a_o promise_n and_o divine_a institution_n but_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a institution_n a_o divine_a precept_n and_o whereas_o he_o boast_v here_o that_o my_o whole_a discourse_n fall_v as_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o mistake_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o mistake_n be_v his_o own_o and_o not_o i_o and_o then_o judge_v of_o his_o discourse_n that_o be_v build_v thereon_o as_o also_o how_o airy_a vain_a and_o ostentive_a he_o be_v in_o say_v what_o will_v he_o now_o do_v blood_n the_o declare_v of_o the_o lord_n death_n have_v no_o necessary_a relation_n with_o partake_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n his_o light_n have_v confound_v he_o so_o as_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v be_v this_o language_n become_v a_o gospel-minister_n that_o what_o luke_n say_v do_v not_o import_v a_o perpetual_a but_o temporary_a command_n will_v after_o appear_v of_o what_o paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10._o will_v be_v speak_v hereafter_o to_o my_o show_v that_o 1_o cor._n 11.26_o paul_n exprese_v the_o end_n of_o this_o ceremony_n to_o be_v a_o declare_v of_o the_o lord_n death_n which_o have_v no_o necessary_a relation_n with_o partake_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n he_o answer_v that_o a_o declaration_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v a_o comprehensive_a end_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o then_o that_o prove_v not_o the_o necessary_a relation_n nor_o yet_o what_o he_o add_v in_o this_o paragraph_n therefore_o i_o entreat_v he_o next_o time_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n pag._n 492._o n._n 12._o he_o rail_v at_o i_o as_o pervert_v the_o apostle_n word_n but_o give_v no_o reason_n unless_o his_o own_o mere_a affirmation_n and_o query_n be_v esteem_v sufficient_a call_v j._n b.'s_n proofless_a proof_n for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o call_v he_o ask_v what_o signify_v christ_n blessing_n of_o the_o bread_n break_v give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n desire_v they_o to_o eat_v answ._n christ_n bless_v the_o bread_n break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v and_o they_o to_o other_o where_o themselves_o confess_v no_o such_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n as_o they_o will_v have_v here_o be_v deducible_a see_v matth._n 14_o v._n 19_o mark_n 6.41_o he_o insinuate_v i_o speak_v false_o in_o say_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o this_o ceremony_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o but_o be_v not_o so_o charitable_a as_o to_o point_v to_o i_o where_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o for_o his_o mere_a affirmation_n and_o distinction_n here_o about_o the_o bread_n i_o will_v wait_v the_o next_o time_n to_o have_v they_o prove_v by_o scripture_n then_o will_v judge_v they_o worth_a the_o consider_v i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o apology_n that_o the_o corinthian_n be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o ceremony_n and_o the_o apostle_n rectify_v the_o abuse_n they_o be_v in_o in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o its_o have_v be_v do_v upon_o a_o religious_a account_n or_o in_o a_o general_a respect_n to_o the_o participiation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n will_v not_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o its_o be_v now_o to_o be_v perform_v and_o therefore_o what_o he_o say_v pag._n 493._o n._n 14._o evanish_v and_o as_o for_o his_o add_v here_o that_o then_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o will-worship_n and_o superstition_n and_o that_o i_o conclude_v the_o apostle_n encourage_v such_o a_o thing_n whence_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o rail_v at_o i_o as_o blasphemousty_a impute_v unfaithfulness_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o act_v he_o i_o answer_v what_o be_v do_v by_o permission_n for_o a_o time_n be_v not_o will-worship_n and_o superstition_n and_o he_o confess_v he_o argue_v not_o from_o the_o corinthian_n practice_n and_o for_o his_o rail_a the_o ground_n of_o it_o be_v false_a it_o need_v no_o answer_n as_o for_o his_o deny_v the_o jew_n have_v such_o a_o custom_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o passover_n his_o mere_a negation_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o elide_v the_o testimony_n of_o far_o more_o credible_a author_n than_o he_o himself_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o as_o for_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o obligation_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n be_v no_o perpetual_a obligation_n it_o do_v not_o infer_v perpetual_a obligation_n upon_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n he_o rail_v at_o this_o but_o without_o a_o reason_n pag._n 495._o instance_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 24_o 25._o but_o i_o tell_v he_o before_o that_o the_o apostle_n give_v here_o a_o account_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o infer_v not_o a_o command_n and_o in_o this_o page_n the_o man_n be_v miserable_o pinch_v to_o show_v how_o the_o wash_n of_o one_o another_o foot_n albeit_o command_v with_o as_o great_a solemnity_n do_v not_o oblige_v as_o much_o now_o but_o his_o conjecture_n prove_v nothing_o what!_o albeit_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n in_o the_o hot_a country_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n humility_n how_o do_v all_o that_o abrogate_v the_o express_a command_n to_o do_v it_o let_v he_o show_v a_o exemption_n from_o this_o from_o plain_a scripture_n cease_v the_o wash_v of_o foot_n command_v with_o as_o great_a solemnity_n yet_o cease_v for_o his_o mere_a assertion_n have_v but_o small_a weight_n and_o by_o which_o i_o be_o not_o like_a nor_o yet_o any_o man_n of_o reason_n that_o be_v not_o resolve_v to_o set_v up_o john_n brown_n as_o a_o pope_n to_o believe_v all_o he_o say_v from_o his_o bare_a word_n to_o conclude_v the_o difference_n he_o think_v pag._n 496._o that_o their_o not_o keep_v exact_o to_o the_o method_n use_v by_o christ_n in_o this_o thing_n signify_v nothing_o supper_n professor_n not_o keep_v to_o the_o method_n christ_n use_v in_o the_o supper_n but_o he_o shall_v prove_v by_o scripture_n how_o they_o be_v safe_a in_o practise_v one_o part_n and_o not_o the_o other_o and_o by_o what_o rule_n he_o account_v the_o
sermon_n in_o the_o pulpit_n a_o better_a lustre_n who_o can_v content_v ourselves_o with_o such_o homely_a language_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v for_o what_o he_o say_v of_o james_n naylor_n i_o need_v return_v no_o answer_n have_v sufficient_o do_v it_o in_o the_o former_a section_n and_o whereas_o he_o give_v the_o example_n of_o the_o antinomian_o to_o show_v the_o quaker_n be_v not_o singular_a in_o not_o be_v call_v after_o a_o particular_a person_n he_o do_v but_o miss_v of_o his_o aim_n for_o the_o quaker_n be_v know_v by_o that_o name_n as_o such_o be_v a_o embody_v people_n consist_v of_o several_a hundred_o gather_v church_n or_o congregation_n but_o the_o antinomian_o be_v only_o here_o either_o some_o have_v these_o particular_a notion_n and_o no_o such_o embody_v people_n else_o let_v he_o tell_v we_o where_o we_o may_v find_v these_o antinomian_a church_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o to_o this_o postscript_n which_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o mere_a rail_a assertion_n as_o to_o i_o and_o that_o the_o rather_o as_o i_o suppose_v r._n m._n c._n will_n long_o ere_o this_o appear_v in_o print_n follow_v see_v the_o letter_n follow_v receive_v a_o solid_a and_o grave_a letter_n from_o a_o old_a friend_n and_o acquaintance_n of_o he_o which_o may_v make_v he_o sensible_a of_o his_o iniquity_n in_o this_o matter_n if_o there_o be_v yet_o any_o christian_a ingenuity_n abide_v with_o he_o and_o that_o by_o prejudice_n he_o be_v not_o total_o blind_v ¶_o as_o for_o his_o rail_a assertion_n of_o george_n keith_n book_n we_o will_v see_v how_o it_o be_v refute_v in_o the_o promise_a answer_n to_o it_o and_o than_o it_o will_v be_v time_n to_o answer_v they_o as_o to_o that_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o blasphemous_a assertion_n which_o they_o pretend_v they_o have_v get_v out_o of_o it_o word_n their_o charge_v we_o with_o blasphemy_n from_o the_o apostle_n word_n but_o all_o christian_n may_v judge_v how_o they_o be_v like_a to_o prove_v it_o blasphemous_a when_o as_o a_o instance_n of_o the_o blasphemous_a assertion_n they_o give_v g._n k_n say_v that_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o mediator_n and_o to_o help_v they_o to_o do_v their_o work_n full_o i_o desire_v they_o when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v this_o assertion_n to_o be_v blasphemy_n they_o may_v not_o forget_v the_o apostle_n word_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o for_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_z christ_n jesus_n and_o show_v how_o g._n k_n word_n be_v more_o blasphemous_a than_o these_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o to_o make_v it_o more_o plain_a to_o the_o reader_n i_o will_v add_v thus_o g._n k_n position_n which_o j._n b._n and_o r._n m._n c._n two_o eminent_a presbyterian_a preacher_n in_o the_o index_n at_o the_o end_n of_o j._n b_n book_n affirm_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o abominable_a head_n of_o quakerism_n be_v that_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o mediator_n the_o apostle_n his_o assertion_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o be_v that_o there_o be_v one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_z christ_n jesus_n we_o desire_v the_o sense_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a ministry_n upon_o this_o or_o otherwise_o we_o hope_v they_o can_v in_o reason_n be_v offend_v if_o just_o repute_v accuser_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o teach_v the_o apostle_n to_o speak_v and_o thence_o condemn_v as_o signal_n calumniator_n and_o heretic_n c._n the_o letter_n of_o lillias_n skein_n to_o r._n m._n c._n a_o expostulatory_a epistle_n direct_v to_o robert_n macqvare_fw-la friend_n robert_n macquare_n my_o tender_a love_n and_o sympathy_n be_v great_a towards_o many_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n who_o be_v suffer_v for_o conscience-sake_n and_o not_o for_o interest_n espouse_v that_o opinion_n of_o who_o thyself_o be_v one_o thou_o be_v often_o very_a near_o i_o notwithstanding_o i_o know_v general_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v more_o embitter_v and_o prejudice_v against_o we_o call_v quaker_n than_o any_o other_o man_n yet_o this_o i_o often_o construct_v to_o flow_v from_o misinformation_n concern_v we_o occasion_n misinformation_n to_o prejudice_n and_o bitterness_n give_v often_o great_a occasion_n be_v so_o little_o acquaint_v with_o and_o conversant_a among_o we_o whereunto_o your_o be_v so_o shy_n be_v but_o like_o the_o disciple_n in_o a_o storm_n see_v he_o appear_v in_o a_o manner_n they_o have_v not_o see_v he_o before_o thought_n he_o be_v come_v near_o they_o for_o deliverance_n yet_o they_o cry_v out_o through_o fear_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o appearance_n of_o some_o evil_a spirit_n other_o time_n i_o have_v look_v upon_o the_o great_a prejudice_n many_o have_v against_o we_o answerable_a to_o christ_n say_v no_o man_n have_v drink_v old_a wine_n straightway_o desire_v to_o drink_v new_a they_o say_v the_o old_a be_v better_a which_o hitherto_o have_v and_o yet_o do_v cause_v i_o bear_v with_o you_o and_o love_n that_o which_o be_v good_a among_o you_o wherever_o it_o appear_v and_o so_o because_o of_o this_o love_n towards_o thou_o i_o be_o the_o more_o concern_v at_o this_o time_n with_o what_o thou_o have_v late_o publish_v for_o though_o my_o acquaintance_n and_o intimacy_n with_o thou_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o a_o very_a serious_a season_n with_o both_o of_o we_o as_o i_o very_o well_o remember_v when_o thou_o be_v shut_v up_o close_a prisoner_n and_o be_v daily_o in_o expectation_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n thy_o deliverance_n from_o which_o i_o retain_v the_o fresh_a sense_n of_o and_o it_o be_v and_o be_v with_o many_o such_o like_a season_n wherein_o the_o lord_n prepare_v my_o heart_n and_o bend_v his_o ear_n a_o sweet_a encouragement_n to_o trust_v he_o and_o a_o singular_a engagement_n on_o i_o to_o wait_v for_o his_o immediate_a leading_n and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o will_n at_o all_o time_n but_o oh_o since_o i_o hear_v of_o and_o read_v thy_o postscript_n to_o john_n brown_n book_n and_o s._n r._n his_o letter_n as_o be_v suppose_v i_o be_o astonish_v and_o much_o ashamed_a on_o thy_o behalf_n o_o be_v the_o best_a fruit_n of_o so_o many_o year_n affliction_n thou_o have_v to_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n that_o one_o call_v and_o suffer_v as_o a_o non_fw-fr conformist_n to_o this_o sinful_a time_n shall_v have_v learn_v no_o more_o conformity_n to_o meek_a lowly_a jesus_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v he_o learned_a obedience_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v sure_o none_o who_o read_v thy_o language_n will_v say_v this_o man_n have_v be_v with_o jesus_n but_o rather_o say_v whose-soever's_a company_n thou_o have_v be_v in_o thou_o have_v learned_a to_o be_v a_o cunning_a artist_n at_o the_o scold_a trade_n and_o be_v therein_o vain_o puff_v up_o rebuke_v r._n m_n exaltedness_n and_o rail_a spirit_n rebuke_v that_o thou_o even_o flee_v aloft_o though_o with_o waxen_a wing_n above_o the_o lowly_a harmless_a meek_a spirit_n of_o christ._n and_o very_o have_v i_o all_o thy_o rhetoric_n whether_o natural_a or_o acquire_v which_o thou_o so_o much_o misimprov'st_a to_o the_o gratify_n of_o that_o which_o need_v more_o to_o be_v crucify_a in_o thyself_o and_o many_o who_o be_v ready_a implicit_o to_o follow_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o desire_n to_o follow_v thy_o example_n nor_o shall_v i_o wish_v that_o ever_o thou_o have_v a_o answer_n from_o any_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n in_o thy_o own_o term_n which_o be_v such_o as_o all_o sober_a unprejudiced_a people_n who_o read_v they_o will_v see_v thy_o spirit_n most_o strong_o embitter_v when_o thy_o pen_n be_v so_o dip_v in_o gall._n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o desire_n to_o bring_v forth_o one_o rail_a accusation_n against_o thou_o neither_o to_o answer_v many_o thing_n thou_o have_v vent_v against_o the_o lord_n present_a work_n and_o witness_n who_o thou_o despise_v and_o abhor_v more_o than_o dung_n under_o thy_o foot_n and_o crowe_v over_o yet_o if_o the_o live_a god_n a_o part_n of_o who_o host_n they_o be_v see_v it_o meet_v he_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o least_o of_o they_o instrument_n worm_n jacob_n be_v a_o thresh_a instrument_n and_o make_v thou_o feel_v worm_n jacob_n a_o thresh_a instrument_n with_o tooth_n to_o deal_v with_o thou_o and_o thresh_v that_o lofty_a malicious_a spirit_n of_o prejudice_n that_o breathe_v through_o thou_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o upon_o thy_o own_o soul_n account_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o letter_n wherein_o i_o desire_v to_o lay_v some_o thing_n before_o thou_o which_o be_v with_o weight_n upon_o i_o my_o compassion_n be_v kindle_v towards_o thou_o that_o when_o the_o lord_n come_v to_o visit_v the_o earth_n thou_o shall_v be_v find_v among_o they_o who_o be_v beat_v
be_v not_o by_o the_o outward_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o follow_a verse_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n this_o than_o must_v be_v do_v by_o some_o sense_n or_o property_n peculiar_a to_o the_o spiritual_a man_n and_o in_o which_o he_o excel_v the_o natural_a man_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o outward_a sense_n as_o all_o do_v know_v therefore_o the_o perception_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n can_v be_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n either_o as_o the_o chief_a or_o only_a mean_n as_o be_v false_o contend_v for_o now_o as_o to_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 10._o that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v zuinglius_fw-la observe_v well_o that_o the_o apostle_n intend_v not_o to_o affirm_v faith_n to_o come_v by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o outward_a word_n hear_v whether_o faith_n come_v by_o the_o outward_a hear_v neither_o do_v the_o follow_a word_n prove_v it_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v unless_o they_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v send_v for_o the_o apostle_n use_v these_o word_n not_o as_o his_o argument_n but_o as_o objection_n which_o may_v be_v form_v as_o the_o same_o apostle_n use_v in_o other_o place_n to_o which_o objection_n he_o answer_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n as_o appear_v verse_n 18._o but_o i_o say_v have_v they_o not_o all_o hear_v yes_o true_o their_o voice_n go_v into_o all_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v of_o the_o father_n and_o son_n or_o the_o father_n in_o the_o word_n which_o word_n be_v not_o only_o near_o we_o but_o according_a to_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n in_o our_o mouth_n and_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o further_o thou_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o from_o this_o but_o that_o faith_n be_v beget_v by_o outward_a hear_n only_o and_o no_o otherwise_o for_o this_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o thy_o argument_n that_o since_o faith_n can_v be_v without_o outward_a hear_n therefore_o nothing_o can_v certain_o be_v believe_v but_o where_o somewhat_o be_v propose_v to_o the_o outward_a hear_v for_o if_o thou_o acknowledge_v faith_n can_v be_v beget_v any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o hear_v thou_o lose_v the_o strength_n of_o thy_o argument_n and_o if_o that_o argument_n hold_v that_o faith_n come_v only_o by_o outward_a hear_v thou_o destroy_v the_o whole_a hypothesis_n for_o have_v before_o affirm_v that_o outward_a miracle_n be_v sufficient_a to_o render_v one_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o revelation_n those_o miracle_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o heal_n of_o the_o sick_a or_o the_o raise_v of_o the_o dead_a will_v avail_v nothing_o because_o those_o as_o for_o most_o part_n all_o miracle_n be_v obvious_a to_o the_o sight_n not_o to_o the_o hear_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o outward_a hear_n only_o thou_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o from_o this_o place_n but_o i_o the_o more_o wonder_n thy_o use_n of_o this_o argument_n consider_v the_o discourse_n we_o have_v together_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o debate_n sense_n a_o certain_a person_n place_v the_o certainty_n of_o every_o thing_n in_o the_o outward_a sense_n for_o when_o we_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o certain_a person_n who_o deny_v the_o certainty_n of_o every_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v discern_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n thou_o condemn_a as_o most_o absurd_a but_o why_o i_o can_v conceive_v since_o there_o be_v no_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o those_o two_o opinion_n the_o one_o say_v there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n concern_v any_o truth_n whether_o they_o be_v necessary_a or_o contingent_a but_o by_o the_o perception_n of_o the_o sense_n the_o other_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o contingent_a truth_n though_o not_o of_o necessary_a truth_n but_o among_o the_o number_n of_o contingent_a truth_n thou_o esteem_v what_o belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n for_o thou_o reckon_v the_o necessary_a truth_n only_o to_o belong_v to_o natural_a religion_n this_o then_o be_v all_o the_o difference_n that_o that_o other_o person_n say_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o religion_n neither_o natural_a nor_o christian_a but_o by_o the_o perception_n of_o the_o outward_a sense_n but_o thou_o say_v though_o thou_o esteem_v the_o certainty_n of_o natural_a religion_n to_o be_v without_o they_o yet_o not_o of_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o again_o since_o thou_o esteem_v that_o not_o natural_a religion_n but_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n thou_o must_v necessary_o conclude_v that_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n rre_v only_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o outward_a sense_n in_o which_o conclusion_n which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o thou_o yield_v the_o matter_n to_o that_o other_o person_n but_o last_o if_o all_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n hope_n and_o salvation_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o outward_a sense_n deceive_v outward_a sense_n can_v be_v deceive_v we_o shall_v be_v most_o miserable_a since_o these_o sense_n can_v be_v easy_o deceive_v and_o by_o many_o outward_a casualty_n and_o natural_a infirmity_n whereunto_o the_o godly_a be_v no_o less_o subject_a than_o the_o wicked_a be_v often_o vitiate_v and_o there_o be_v as_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v false_a miracle_n which_o as_o to_o the_o outward_a can_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o true_a of_o which_o we_o can_v infallible_o judge_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n which_o only_o discern_v what_o be_v outward_a there_o be_v a_o necessity_n then_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o some_o other_o mean_n from_o all_o which_o it_o do_v appear_v how_o fallacious_a and_o weak_a this_o argument_n be_v but_o thanks_o be_v unto_o god_n who_o will_v not_o that_o our_o faith_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o so_o uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a a_o foundation_n and_o whoever_o have_v know_v true_a faith_n or_o have_v feel_v the_o divine_a testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o his_o soul_n will_v judge_v otherwise_o neither_o will_v be_v move_v by_o such_o reason_n i_o pray_v god_n therefore_o to_o remove_v these_o cloud_n which_o darken_v thy_o understanding_n that_o thou_o may_v perceive_v the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v that_o save_v word_n of_o grace_n which_o i_o commend_v thou_o unto_o and_o that_o god_n may_v give_v thou_o a_o heart_n inclinable_a to_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o 24_o of_o the_o month._n call_v november_n 1676_o thy_o faithful_a friend_n r._n barclay_n this_o letter_n a_o year_n ago_o at_o the_o desire_n of_o my_o friend_n r._n b._n i_o deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o afore-named_n ambassador_n desire_v his_o answer_n in_o write_v which_o he_o then_o promise_v but_o not_o have_v as_o yet_o do_v it_o be_v see_v meet_a to_o be_v publish_v rotterdam_n the_o 28_o of_o march_n 1678._o b._n f._n r._n b_n testimony_n concern_v his_o father_n david_n barclay_n of_o vrie_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o scotland_n receive_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o year_n 1666._o be_v the_o fifty_o six_o year_n of_o his_o age_n about_o the_o seven_o month_n and_o abide_v in_o it_o father_n r._n b_n account_n of_o the_o death_n of_o his_o father_n and_o in_o constant_a unity_n with_o the_o faithful_a friend_n thereof_o have_v suffer_v the_o spoil_v of_o his_o good_n cheerful_o and_o many_o other_o indignity_n he_o be_v former_o unaccustomed_a to_o bear_v and_o several_a tedious_a imprisonment_n after_o the_o sixty_o six_o year_n of_o his_o age._n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n 1686._o be_v past_o the_o seventy_o six_o year_n of_o his_o age_n he_o take_v a_o fever_n which_o continue_v with_o he_o for_o two_o week_n during_o which_o time_n he_o signify_v a_o quiet_a content_v mind_n free_o resign_v up_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o give_v several_a live_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n manifest_a to_o he_o in_o the_o revelation_n thereof_o and_o though_o there_o be_v hardly_o to_o be_v find_v one_o of_o a_o thousand_o like_v to_o he_o for_o natural_a vigour_n of_o his_o age_n and_o that_o his_o fever_n at_o time_n be_v very_o strong_a yet_o he_o never_o be_v unsensible_a nor_o do_v any_o wrong_a expression_n or_o action_n proceed_v from_o he_o nor_o the_o least_o symptom_n of_o discontent_n or_o fretfulness_n he_o have_v be_v trouble_v with_o the_o gravel_n and_o after_o his_o sickness_n have_v very_o much_o pain_n in_o make_v water_n so_o about_o two_o day_n before_o his_o death_n as_o those_o about_o he_o be_v help_v he_o up_o for_o that_o end_n feel_v his_o weakness_n with_o the_o pain_n in_o a_o agony_n he_o say_v i_o be_o go_v now_o and_o then_o instant_o check_v himself_o add_v but_o i_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o
to_o the_o grace_n give_v 300._o the_o confine_n of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o certain_a external_n form_n and_o ceremony_n be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o universal_a love_n 703._o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a 398._o gilpin_n john_n his_o story_n answer_v 74._o god_n how_o he_o have_v always_o manifest_v himself_o 269_o unless_o he_o speak_v within_o the_o preacher_n make_v a_o rustle_n to_o no_o purpose_n 271_o 272._o none_o can_v know_v he_o aright_o unless_o he_o receive_v it_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 270_o 271_o 272._o god_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v within_o 272._o he_o be_v know_v by_o sensation_n and_o not_o by_o mere_a speculation_n and_o syllogistick_a demonstration_n 271._o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n root_n and_o beginning_n of_o all_o good_a work_n and_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o eternal_a word_n 274._o god_n speak_v be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n 278._o among_o all_o he_o have_v his_o own_o choose_a one_o 270._o he_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a see_v redemption_n he_o have_v manifest_v his_o love_n in_o send_v his_o son_n 367_o 368_o see_v justification_n he_o reward_v the_o good_a work_n of_o his_o child_n 386._o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 388._o he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o only_a judge_n of_o the_o conscience_n 515_o 517_o he_o will_v have_v a_o free_a exercise_n 522._o his_o forbearance_n and_o long-suffering_a 343_o 344_o 223_o 217._o when_o god_n harden_v 344._o what_o man_n do_v act_n without_o his_o power_n be_v not_o accept_v 453._o by_o manifestation_n he_o come_v forth_o into_o the_o creature_n and_o yet_o be_v still_o in_o himself_o 580._o who_o to_o know_v be_v eternal_a life_n 115._o god_n voice_n be_v know_v by_o a_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a sense_n 898_o god_n be_v light_a 65_o 115_o 161._o there_o be_v in_o all_o man_n a_o supernatural_a idea_n of_o god_n as_o of_o a_o most_o perfect_a be_v 900._o his_o glory_n and_o beauty_n make_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n as_o dross_n and_o dung_n 902._o his_o condescension_n to_o the_o weak_a 35._o of_o all_o thing_n sin_n be_v most_o contrary_a to_o his_o nature_n 320._o who_o riches_n and_o bounty_n lead_v man_n to_o repentance_n 791._o who_o speak_v inward_o to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n 896._o godliness_n from_o a_o tender_a age_n the_o happiness_n of_o few_o and_o why_o 677._o good_a that_o which_o be_v good_a for_o one_o to_o do_v may_v be_v sinful_a to_o another_o 300._o the_o good_a in_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v commend_v 682_o and_o the_o evil_n not_o to_o be_v encourage_v 683._o gospel_n see_v redemption_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v as_o lie_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o profane_a and_o carnal_a man_n 276_o 284_o 285._o the_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v explain_v 285_o 286._o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o law_n and_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o it_o 386_o 287_o 298._o see_v covenant_n law_n whether_o any_o aught_o to_o preach_v it_o in_o this_o or_o that_o place_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n 299_o 416_o 417._o its_o work_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n 382._o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v propagate_v and_o of_o its_o propagation_n 517._o the_o worship_n of_o it_o be_v inward_a 484._o it_o be_v a_o inward_a power_n 349_o 350._o evil_n under_o the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v resist_v 665._o be_v most_o excellent_a dispensation_n be_v to_o be_v like_o christ_n 664_o the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n be_v bring_v nigh_o unto_o all_o 125._o which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n 126._o a_o new_a revelation_n of_o the_o good_a old_a gospel_n and_o doctrine_n 308._o this_o gospel_n be_v make_v a_o mock_n and_o illusion_n by_o the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o absolute_a reprobation_n 319_o 321_o 322._o be_v preach_v to_o every_o creature_n 323._o or_o in_o every_o creature_n 799._o which_o gospel_n be_v hide_v in_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v 632._o a_o twofold_a dispensation_n of_o it_o 664._o the_o preach_v of_o it_o pervert_v by_o our_o adversary_n 782._o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v necessary_a 793._o yet_o the_o declaration_n be_v not_o the_o power_n or_o manifestation_n of_o god_n in_o man_n 799._o which_o assertion_n be_v neither_o heathenism_n nor_o jesuttism_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n and_o salvation_n be_v not_o impossible_a without_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o outward_a preach_n 805._o government_n see_v church_n magistrate_n order_n and_o government_n assert_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 193._o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o form_n thereof_o 194._o the_o abuse_n make_v not_o void_a the_o true_a use_n ibid._n the_o end_n thereof_o 195._o be_v practise_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a christian_n ibid._n 199._o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n concern_v it_o 196._o dissent_v reason_v against_o it_o 197._o it_o be_v no_o inconsistency_n or_o contradiction_n to_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o one_o self_n and_o to_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o man_n in_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v the_o dominion_n ibid._n in_o what_o case_n and_o how_o far_o this_o government_n extend_v ay_o as_o to_o outward_o and_o temporal_n 206_o 211._o two_o in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o pure_o conscientious_a 212_o 224._o it_o differ_v from_o the_o oppress_v and_o persecute_v principality_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o antichristian_a assembly_n 230_o 235._o grace_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v be_v lose_v through_o disobedience_n 398_o etc._n etc._n save_v grace_n see_v redemption_n which_o be_v require_v in_o the_o call_n and_o qualify_a of_o a_o minister_n see_v minister_n in_o some_o it_o work_v in_o a_o special_a and_o prevalent_a manner_n that_o they_o necessary_o obtain_v salvation_n 340_o 341._o your_o grace_n see_v title_n grace_n be_v give_v in_o order_n to_o save_v 63_o 64._o what_o it_o teach_v 128._o all_o have_v grace_n sufficient_a for_o salvation_n 341_o 578_o 699._o if_o not_o resist_v work_v salvation_n 801._o the_o calvinist_n make_v grace_n a_o irresistible_a power_n false_o 803_o 827_o 828_o 834._o god_n grace_n and_o love_n be_v universal_a 164._o its_o work_n in_o the_o heart_n 387_o 802._o concern_v fall_v from_o grace_n 136_o 138_o 167._o a_o graceless_a man_n be_v render_v unfit_a to_o receive_v the_o new_a wine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o unclean_a vessel_n 656._o greek_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o greek_n appear_v in_o their_o worldly_a affair_n 764._o h._n hai_o ebn_n yokdan_n 365_o hand_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n 417_o 511_o 660_o 833._o paul_n wrought_v with_o his_o hand_n 652_o 435_o head_n of_o uncover_v the_o head_n in_o salutation_n 531_o 533_o 540_o 543_o 564_o 565_o 874._o to_o put_v off_o the_o hat_n one_o to_o another_o not_o command_v by_o christ_n 3._o be_v one_o of_o the_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o the_o world_n ibid._n not_o warrant_v to_o man_n by_o scripture_n but_o to_o god_n 60._o and_o salutation_n command_v by_o christ_n be_v own_v by_o the_o quaker_n 2_o 3._o who_o do_v it_o consist_v in_o take_v off_o the_o hat_n and_o bow_v of_o the_o body_n 874_o see_v honour_n salutation_n hear_v inward_a and_o outward_a hear_v distinguish_v 603_o 803_o 804._o faith_n come_v not_o by_o outward_a hear_v 904_o 905._o see_v infant_n heart_n the_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a and_o wicked_a 30_o 312_o 314._o obdurateness_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n when_o beget_v 789._o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blindness_n just_o reprovable_a and_o all_o the_o enormity_n follow_v thereupon_o 242._o man_n can_v procure_v to_o himself_o tenderness_n of_o heart_n in_o his_o own_o will_n 338_o heathen_n albeit_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n yet_o they_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o loss_n by_o the_o fall_n 361._o some_o heathen_n will_v not_o swear_v 555._o heathenish_a ceremony_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o christian_a religion_n 492._o heathen-philosopher_n divine_a knowledge_n 361_o 362._o they_o declare_v that_o inward_a concupiscence_n be_v sin_n 604._o the_o gospel_n hold_v forth_o to_o they_o 327._o and_o christ_n be_v give_v as_o a_o light_n to_o inlighten_v the_o gentile_n 358._o concern_v the_o heathen_n book_n of_o nature_n 630_o 631._o salvation_n be_v possible_a to_o they_o in_o the_o most_o barbarous_a place_n 700_o 803_o 804._o they_o have_v a_o day_n of_o visitation_n through_o the_o gospel_n 788._o those_o that_o deny_v the_o inward_a principle_n of_o grace_n and_o light_n give_v to_o all_o man_n be_v forge_v to_o urge_v the_o same_o against_o a_o heathen_a because_o he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n 700_o 701._o see_v gentiles_n pagan_n heathen-persecution_n see_v persecution_n hebrew_n the_o various_a lection_n of_o the_o hebrew_n character_n of_o the_o bible_n 303._o henry_n